Selected quad for the lemma: order_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
order_n apostle_n church_n scripture_n 3,158 5 5.7252 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A17183 Fiftie godlie and learned sermons diuided into fiue decades, conteyning the chiefe and principall pointes of Christian religion, written in three seuerall tomes or sections, by Henrie Bullinger minister of the churche of Tigure in Swicerlande. Whereunto is adioyned a triple or three-folde table verie fruitefull and necessarie. Translated out of Latine into English by H.I. student in diuinitie.; Sermonum decades quinque. English Bullinger, Heinrich, 1504-1575.; H. I., student in divinity. 1577 (1577) STC 4056; ESTC S106874 1,440,704 1,172

There are 39 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

tranquillity_n do_v preserve_v fellowly_a society_n among_o man_n do_v defend_v the_o good_a bring_v inordinate_a person_n into_o better_a order_n and_o last_o do_v not_o make_v a_o little_a only_a to_o the_o set_n for_o ward_n of_o religion_n but_o do_v also_o abrogate_v evil_a custom_n and_o utter_o banish_v unlawful_a mischief_n hereof_o we_o have_v example_n in_o the_o deed_n of_o nabuchodonosor_n cyrus_n darius_n artaxerxes_n and_o other_o prince_n more_o but_o touch_v the_o magistrate_n power_n his_o law_n and_o office_n i_o will_v speak_v of_o they_o in_o a_o other_o place_n ecclesiastical_a law_n be_v those_o la●●_n which_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o apply_v to_o the_o state_n of_o man_n time_n and_o place_n be_v receive_v &_o have_v authority_n in_o the_o church_n among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n i_o call_v these_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o not_o tradition_n of_o man_n because_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o invent_v or_o bring_v to_o light_n by_o the_o wit_n of_o man_n they_o be_v use_v of_o that_o church_n which_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o shepherd_n alone_o and_o know_v not_o a_o stranger_n tongue_n the_o congregation_n come_v together_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o unto_o common_a prayer_n at_o morning_n at_o evening_n and_o at_o such_o appoint_a hour_n as_o be_v most_o convenient_a for_o every_o place_n and_o every_o people_n and_o that_o the_o church_n hold_v as_o a_o law_n the_o church_n have_v solemn_a prayer_n time_n holy_a day_n and_o fast_v day_n which_o it_o do_v keep_v by_o certain_a law_n the_o church_n at_o certain_a time_n in_o a_o certain_a place_n and_o appoint_a order_n do_v celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o receive_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n baptise_v infant_n it_o forbid_v not_o woman_n to_o come_v to_o the_o lord_n supper_n and_o that_o it_o hold_v as_o a_o law_n the_o church_n by_o judge_n convenient_o appoint_v do_v judge_v in_o cause_n of_o matrimony_n and_o have_v certain_a law_n to_o direct_v they_o in_o such_o case_n but_o it_o derive_v these_o and_o all_o other_o like_a to_o these_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o do_v for_o edification_n apply_v they_o to_o the_o estate_n of_o man_n time_n and_o place_n so_o that_o in_o diverse_a church_n you_o may_v see_v some_o diversity_n in_o deed_n but_o no_o discord_n or_o repugnancy_n at_o all_o furthermore_o ecclesiastical_a law_n have_v their_o measure_n &_o certain_a mark_n beyond_o which_o they_o may_v not_o pass_v to_o wit_n that_o nothing_o be_v do_v or_o receive_v contrary_a or_o differ_v in_o any_o jot_n from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sound_v against_o charity_n and_o comeliness_n either_o in_o little_a or_o much_o that_o last_o this_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v effectual_o observe_v let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o according_a unto_o order_n and_o to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n if_o therefore_o any_o man_n shall_v go_v about_o under_o a_o colour_a law●●_n pretence_n of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n tobr_v in_o and_o pop_v into_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o godly_a any_o superstitious_a busy_a and_o unseemly_a tradition_n of_o man_n which_o withal_o do_v differ_v from_o the_o scripture_n their_o part_n shall_v be_v first_o to_o try_v that_o deceit_n of_o they_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n and_o then_o to_o reject_v it_o there_o remain_v now_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n which_o have_v their_o beginning_n ●●●ditions_n be_v make_v and_o invent_v of_o man_n at_o their_o own_o choice_n of_o some_o foolish_a intent_n or_o some_o fond_a affection_n of_o mankind_n contrary_a or_o without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o which_o sort_n you_o shall_v find_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o example_n i_o mean_v the_o sect_n the_o dominion_n and_o single_a life_n of_o spiritual_a man_n the_o rite_n and_o sundry_a fashion_a custom_n use_v in_o their_o church_n touch_v all_o which_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n cite_v the_o prophet_n esaie_n say_v why_o transgress_v you_o the_o lord_n commandment_n for_o your_o own_o tradition_n you_o hypocrite_n right_o do_v esaias_n prophesy_v of_o you_o where_o he_o say_v this_o people_n come_v nigh_o unto_o i_o with_o their_o mouth_n and_o with_o their_o lip_n they_o honour_v i_o but_o their_o heart_n be_v far_o from_o i_o but_o they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a teach_v doctrine_n the_o precept_n of_o man_n the_o bless_a martyr_n cyprian_n allude_v to_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n epistolarum_n lib._n 1._o epi._n 8._o say_v it_o be_v corrupt_a wicked_a and_o robbery_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n what_o soever_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o giddy_a madness_n of_o man_n head_n to_o the_o violate_v of_o god_n disposition_n depart_v as_o far_o as_o may_v be_v from_o the_o infective_a contagiousness_n of_o such_o fellow_n and_o seek_v by_o flight_n to_o shun_v their_o talk_n as_o wary_o as_o a_o eat_a cancer_n or_o infect_v pestilence_n for_o the_o lord_n forewarn_v and_o tell_v you_o that_o they_o be_v blind_a leader_n of_o the_o blind_a paul_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o titus_n say_v rebuke_v they_o sharp_o that_o they_o may_v be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n not_o take_v heed_n to_o jewish_a fable_n and_o commandment_n of_o man_n turn_v from_o the_o truth_n i_o do_v of_o purpose_n here_o let_v pass_v the_o word_n of_o paul_n in_o his_o second_o chapter_n to_o the_o colossian_n because_o the_o place_n be_v know_v of_o all_o man_n i_o will_v not_o trouble_v you_o dear_o beve_v with_o too_o large_a and_o busy_a a_o exposition_n hereof_o for_o i_o suppose_v that_o this_o little_a that_o i_o have_v say_v touch_v the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o man_n i_o mean_v law_n politic_a ecclesiastical_a and_o mere_a tradition_n of_o man_n be_v sufficient_a to_o the_o attentive_a and_o faithful_a hearer_n who_o at_o their_o come_n home_o do_v more_o diligent_o think_v of_o every_o point_n by_o then selue_o and_o also_o read_v the_o place_n of_o scripture_n often_o cite_v by_o i_o and_o devout_o expound_v the_o lord_n for_o his_o mercy_n grant_v that_o we_o do_v never_o despise_v the_o admonition_n of_o nature_n law_n graff_v in_o our_o heart_n nor_o yet_o be_v entangle_v in_o man_n tradition_n but_o that_o we_o in_o walk_v lawful_o in_o upright_o politic_a law_n and_o holy_a ecclesiastical_a ordinance_n may_v serve_v the_o lord_n to_o who_o be_v all_o glory_n honour_n and_o dominion_n for_o ever_o and_o ever_o amen_n of_o god_n law_n and_o of_o the_o two_o first_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n ¶_o the_o second_o sermon_n the_o law_n of_o god_n open_o publish_v &_o be_v proclaim_v by_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n himself_o set_v down_o ordinary_a rule_n for_o we_o to_o know_v what_o we_o have_v to_o do_v and_o what_o to_o leave_v undo_v require_v obedience_n and_o threaten_v utter_a destruction_n to_o disobedient_a rebel_n this_o law_n be_v divide_v into_o the_o moral_a ceremonial_a and_o judicial_a law_n all_o which_o part_n and_o every_o point_n whereof_o moses_n have_v very_o exquisite_o write_v and_o diligent_o expound_v the_o moral_a law_n be_v that_o which_o teach_v man_n manner_n and_o lay_v law_n down_o before_o we_o the_o shape_n of_o virtue_n declare_v therewithal_o how_o great_a righteousness_n godliness_n obedience_n and_o perfectness_n god_n look_v for_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o we_o mortal_a man_n the_o ceremonial_a law_n be_v they_o which_o be_v law_n give_v concern_v the_o order_n of_o holy_a and_o ecclesiastical_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o also_o touch_v the_o minister_n and_o thing_n assign_v to_o the_o ministry_n and_o other_o holy_a use_n last_o of_o all_o the_o judicial_a law_n give_v rule_n concern_v law_n matter_n to_o be_v judge_v of_o between_o man_n and_o man_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o public_a peace_n equity_n and_o civil_a honesty_n touch_v the_o two_o latter_a of_o these_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o they_o in_o place_n convenient_a at_o this_o time_n i_o mean_v to_o discourse_v upon_o the_o moral_a law_n first_o of_o all_o therefore_o let_v no_o man_n time_n think_v that_o before_o moses_n time_n there_o be_v no_o law_n and_o that_o the_o law_n be_v by_o moses_n first_o of_o all_o publish_v for_o the_o self_n same_o especial_a point_n of_o the_o moral_a law_n which_o moses_n set_v down_o in_o the_o ten_o commandment_n be_v very_o well_o know_v to_o the_o patriarch_n even_o from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o world_n for_o they_o worship_v the_o one_o ●rue_a god_n alone_o for_o their_o god_n who_o they_o reverence_v and_o call_v upon_o he_o jacob_n take_v away_o with_o he_o the_o syrian_a idol_n of_o laban_n out_o of_o his_o house_n and_o hide_v they_o in_o bethel_n under_o a_o oak_n or_o terebinth_n tree_n which_o be_v nigh_o to_o
power_n to_o give_v judgement_n of_o doctrine_n even_o doctrine_n by_o this_o one_o sentence_n of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n appear_v let_v the_o prophet_n say_v he_o speak_v two_o or_o three_o at_o once_o ●4_o and_o let_v the_o other_o judge_n and_o in_o a_o other_o 3._o place_n he_o say_v prove_v all_o thing_n and_o keep_v that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o s._n 4._o john_n say_v dear_a belove_a believe_v not_o every_o spirit_n but_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god._n but_o of_o this_o kind_n of_o power_n to_o judge_v there_o be_v also_o a_o certain_a order_n for_o the_o church_n do_v not_o judge_v at_o she_o own_o pleasure_n but_o after_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o according_a to_o the_o order_n and_o rule_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o here_o also_o order_n moderation_n and_o charity_n be_v observe_v therefore_o if_o at_o any_o time_n the_o church_n of_o counsel_n god_n according_a to_o the_o authority_n which_o she_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o lord_n do_v call_v a_o counsel_n together_o for_o some_o weighty_a matter_n as_o we_o read_v that_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o lord_n 15._o do_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o lean_v not_o here_o to_o her_o own_o fleshly_a judgement_n but_o give_v over_o herself_o to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o examine_v all_o her_o do_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o of_o the_o two-fould_a charity_n wherefore_o the_o church_n make_v no_o new_a law_n as_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n or_o rather_o the_o apostolic_a church_n say_v that_o it_o seem_v good_a both_o to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o to_o the_o church_n that_o no_o other_o burden_n shall_v be_v lay_v upon_o the_o faithful_a christian_n but_o only_o a_o few_o and_o those_o very_a necessary_a thing_n and_o neither_o beside_o nor_o contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n now_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n church_n be_v of_o diverse_a sort_n the_o good_a order_n and_o well_o dispose_v whereof_o for_o the_o commodity_n of_o man_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n of_o which_o sort_n those_o thing_n be_v which_o concern_v outward_a worship_n in_o place_n &_o in_o time_n as_o be_v prophesy_v or_o interpretation_n of_o tongue_n and_o school_n also_o the_o church_n have_v to_o judge_v in_o cause_n of_o matrimony_n and_o chief_o it_o have_v correction_n of_o manner_n admonition_n punishment_n and_o also_o excommunicate_v or_o cut_v off_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o apostle_n 13._o also_o say_v that_o this_o power_n be_v give_v he_o and_o yet_o to_o the_o intent_n he_o shall_v therewith_o edify_v &_o not_o destroy_v for_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v remember_v &_o such_o like_a be_v limit_v with_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o word_n and_o of_o love_n also_o with_o holy_a example_n and_o reason_n deduce_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o all_o which_o we_o will_v perchance_o more_o large_o speak_v in_o their_o place_n thus_o much_o have_v i_o hitherto_o say_v concern_v ecclesiastical_a power_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o i_o have_v declare_v with_o how_o open_a a_o mouth_n our_o adversary_n do_v publish_v but_o yet_o they_o handle_v these_o matter_n so_o gross_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v even_o unto_o child_n what_o they_o seek_v or_o what_o they_o will_v defend_v to_o wit_n not_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o their_o own_o covetousness_n lust_n and_o tyranny_n the_o canonical_a truth_n teach_v we_o that_o christ_n himself_o do_v hold_v and_o exercise_v absolute_a or_o full_a power_n in_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o have_v give_v the_o ministerial_a power_n to_o the_o church_n who_o execute_v it_o for_o the_o most_o part_n by_o minister_n and_o religious_o execute_v it_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n these_o thing_n be_v in_o this_o sort_n consider_v it_o shall_v not_o be_v great_o laboursome_a to_o know_v the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n of_o god_n for_o it_o execute_v as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o that_o power_n which_o it_o have_v receive_v of_o god_o most_o careful_o and_o faithful_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v serve_v god_n that_o it_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o that_o it_o may_v please_v he_o and_o that_o i_o may_v reckon_v up_o some_o of_o her_o study_n special_o first_o of_o all_o it_o worship_v church_n call_v upon_o love_v and_o serve_v one_o god_n in_o trinity_n and_o take_v nothing_o in_o hand_n not_o have_v first_o consult_v with_o the_o word_n of_o this_o true_a god_n for_o she_o order_v all_o her_o do_n according_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o god_n word_n she_o judge_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o same_o she_o frame_v all_o her_o building_n &_o be_v build_v maintain_v they_o &_o be_v fall_v down_o she_o repair_v or_o restore_v they_o again_o the_o assembly_n and_o congregation_n of_o saint_n upon_o earth_n she_o fervent_o further_v and_o love_v in_o these_o thing_n it_o harken_v diligent_o to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n she_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o sacrament_n devout_o and_o with_o great_a joy_n and_o desire_v of_o heavenly_a thing_n it_o pray_v to_o god_n by_o the_o intercession_n of_o our_o only_a mediator_n christ_n with_o a_o strong_a faith_n fervent_o continual_o and_o most_o attentive_o it_o praise_v the_o majesty_n of_o god_n for_o ever_o and_o with_o great_a joy_n give_v thank_n for_o all_o his_o heavenly_a benefit_n it_o high_o esteem_v all_o and_o every_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n neither_o do_v it_o neglect_v any_o of_o they_o but_o chief_o it_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o receive_v all_o thing_n belong_v either_o to_o life_n salvation_n righteousness_n or_o felicity_n of_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n as_o he_o who_o only_o choose_v she_o and_o then_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o blood_n sanctify_v she_o and_o make_v she_o a_o church_n that_o be_v a_o choose_a people_n who_o only_a king_n redeemer_n high_a priest_n and_o defender_n he_o be_v &_o without_o who_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n therefore_o in_o god_n alone_o by_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n she_o only_o rest_v he_o she_o only_o desire_v and_o love_v and_o for_o his_o sake_n she_o rejoice_v to_o loose_v all_o thing_n that_o appertain_v to_o this_o world_n yea_o and_o to_o spend_v her_o blood_n and_o her_o life_n and_o therefore_o it_o cleave_v unto_o christ_n by_o faith_n inseparable_o neither_o do_v it_o hate_v any_o thing_n more_o bitter_o than_o fall_v away_o from_o christ_n and_o desperation_n for_o without_o christ_n there_o seem_v nothing_o in_o all_o this_o whole_a life_n to_o be_v pleasant_a with_o satan_n as_o with_o a_o deadly_a enemy_n she_o have_v unappeasable_a enmity_n against_o heresy_n and_o error_n it_o strive_v both_o constant_o and_o wise_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n &_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o most_o diligent_o keep_v she_o keep_v herself_o as_o much_o as_o lie_v in_o her_o unspotted_a of_o the_o world_n and_o of_o the_o flesh_n &_o from_o all_o carnal_a and_o spiritual_a infection_n and_o therefore_o she_o flee_v from_o and_o by_o all_o mean_n detest_v all_o unlawful_a congregation_n and_o profane_a religion_n with_o all_o wicked_a man_n and_o willing_o and_o open_o confess_v christ_n both_o by_o word_n and_o deed_n even_o with_o the_o damage_n of_o her_o life_n it_o be_v exercise_v with_o affliction_n but_o yet_o never_o overcome_v it_o keep_v unity_n and_o concord_n careful_o all_o and_o every_o the_o member_n of_o her_o body_n she_o most_o tender_o love_v it_o do_v good_a unto_o all_o man_n as_o much_o as_o power_n and_o ability_n will_v suffer_v it_o hurt_v not_o man_n it_o forgive_v willing_o it_o bear_v with_o the_o weak_a brotherly_a till_o they_o be_v bring_v forth_o forward_o to_o perfection_n she_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n but_o thoroughe_o humility_n be_v keep_v in_o obedience_n in_o modesty_n and_o in_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o godliness_n but_o who_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v able_a to_o recite_v all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o the_o study_n of_o the_o church_n in_o a_o very_a large_a discourse_n much_o less_o in_o this_o short_a recital_n and_o who_o will_v not_o desire_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o so_o divine_a and_o heavenly_a a_o congregation_n i_o will_v by_o and_o by_o join_v hereunto_o that_o which_o remain_v touch_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n of_o the_o division_n thereof_o and_o of_o other_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o consideration_n hereof_o but_o that_o i_o do_v perceive_v you_o be_v already_o weary_a of_o hear_v do_v earnest_o look_v for_o a_o end_n of_o this_o sermon_n therefore_o we_o will_v put_v off_o the_o residue_n till_o to_o morrow_n and_o now_o lift_v
be_v sow_v abroad_o very_o ungodly_a speech_n for_o some_o there_o be_v which_o do_v suppose_v that_o the_o scripture_n that_o be_v the_o very_a word_n of_o god_n be_v of_o itself_o so_o dark_a that_o it_o can_v be_v read_v with_o any_o profit_n at_o al._n and_o again_o some_o other_o affirm_v that_o the_o word_n plain_o deliver_v by_o god_n to_o mankind_n do_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o no_o exposition_n and_o therefore_o say_v they_o that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v in_o deed_n to_o be_v read_v of_o all_o man_n but_o so_o that_o every_o man_n may_v lawful_o invent_v and_o choose_v to_o himself_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o every_o one_o shall_v be_v persuade_v in_o himself_o to_o be_v most_o convenient_a these_o fellow_n do_v altogether_o condemn_v the_o order_n receive_v of_o the_o church_n whereby_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n do_v expound_v the_o scripture_n to_o the_o congregation_n but_o i_o dear_o belove_v if_o as_o you_o have_v begin_o so_o you_o will_v go_v forward_o to_o pray_v to_o the_o lord_n do_v trust_n by_o the_o hope_n that_o i_o have_v in_o god_n goodness_n that_o i_o be_o able_a plain_o to_o declare_v that_o to_o the_o godly_a the_o scripture_n be_v nothing_o dark_a at_o all_o &_o that_o the_o lord_n his_o will_n be_v altogether_o to_o have_v we_o understand_v it_o then_o that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v always_o to_o be_v expound_v where_o also_o i_o will_v teach_v you_o the_o manner_n and_o some_o ready_a way_n how_o to_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n the_o handle_n of_o these_o point_n shall_v take_v away_o the_o impediment_n which_o drive_v man_n from_o the_o read_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o shall_v cause_v the_o read_n &_o hear_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v both_o wholesome_a &_o fruitful_a and_o first_o of_o all_o that_o god_n will_v be_v to_o have_v his_o word_n understand_v of_o man_n understand_v kind_n we_o may_v thereby_o gather_v especial_o because_o that_o in_o speak_v to_o his_o servant_n he_o use_v a_o most_o common_a kind_n of_o speech_n wherewithal_o even_o the_o very_a idiote_n be_v acquaint_v neither_o do_v we_o read_v that_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o interpreter_n of_o his_o high_a and_o everlasting_a wisdom_n do_v use_v any_o strange_a kind_n of_o speech_n so_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a pack_n of_o writer_n none_o can_v be_v find_v to_o excel_v they_o in_o a_o more_o plain_a and_o easy_a phrase_n of_o writing_n their_o write_n be_v full_a of_o common_a proverb_n similitude_n parable_n comparison_n devise_v narration_n example_n and_o such_o other_o like_o manner_n of_o speech_n than_o which_o there_o be_v nothing_o that_o do_v more_o move_v &_o plain_o teach_v the_o common_a sort_n of_o wit_n among_o mortal_a man_n there_o arise_v i_o confess_v some_o darkness_n in_o the_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o natural_a property_n figurative_a ornament_n and_o the_o unacquainted_a use_n of_o the_o tongue_n but_o that_o difficulty_n may_v easy_o be_v help_v by_o study_n scripture_n diligence_n faith_n and_o the_o mean_n of_o skilful_a interpreter_n i_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n peter_n say_v in_o the_o epistle_n of_o paul_n many_o thing_n be_v hard_a to_o be_v understand_v but_o immediate_o he_o add_v which_o the_o unlearned_a and_o those_o that_o be_v unperfect_a or_o unstable_a pervert_v as_o they_o do_v the_o other_o scripture_n also_o unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n whereby_o we_o gather_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v difficulty_n or_o obscure_v to_o the_o unlearned_a unskilful_a unexercised_a and_o malicious_a or_o corrupt_a will_n and_o not_o to_o the_o zealous_a and_o godly_a reader_n or_o hearer_n thereof_o therefore_o when_o s._n paul_n say_v if_o as_o yet_o our_o gospel_n be_v hide_v from_o they_o it_o be_v hide_v which_o perish_v in_o who_o the_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n have_v blind_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o unbeliever_n that_o to_o they_o there_o shall_v not_o shine_v the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o image_n of_o god._n he_o do_v not_o lay_v the_o blame_n of_o this_o difficulty_n on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o upon_o the_o unprofitable_a hearer_n whosoever_o we_o be_v therefore_o that_o do_v desire_v right_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n our_o care_n must_v be_v that_o satan_n possess_v not_o our_o mind_n and_o close_o up_o our_o eye_n for_o our_o saviour_n also_o in_o the_o gospel_n say_v this_o be_v damnation_n because_o the_o light_n come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o man_n love_v darkness_n rather_o than_o light_v beside_o that_o the_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n and_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o call_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o scripture_n darkness_n obscureness_n or_o mistiness_n but_o a_o certain_a brightness_n and_o lightsomness_n david_n say_v thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n unto_o my_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o my_o path_n and_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v more_o evident_a than_o that_o which_o in_o make_v doubtful_a and_o obscure_a thing_n manifest_a no_o man_n do_v refer_v to_o darkness_n and_o uncertainty_n thing_n uncertain_a doubtful_a and_o obscure_a be_v make_v manifest_a by_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v more_o certain_a sure_a and_o evident_a but_o as_o often_o as_o any_o question_n or_o controversy_n do_v happen_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n do_v not_o all_o man_n agree_v that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v end_v and_o determine_v by_o the_o scripture_n it_o must_v therefore_o needs_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v evident_a plain_a and_o most_o assure_o certain_a but_o though_o the_o scripture_n be_v manifest_a and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v evident_a exposition_n yet_o notwithstanding_o it_o refuse_v not_o a_o godly_a or_o holy_a exposition_n but_o rather_o a_o holy_a exposition_n do_v give_v a_o set_n out_o to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o bring_v forth_o much_o fruit_n in_o the_o godly_a hearer_n and_o for_o because_o many_o do_v deny_v that_o the_o scripture_n ought_v to_o have_v any_o exposition_n i_o will_v show_v by_o example_n which_o can_v not_o be_v gainsay_v that_o they_o ought_v altogether_o to_o be_v expound_v for_o god_n himself_o have_v often_o communication_n with_o moses_n by_o the_o space_n of_o forty_o day_n and_o as_o many_o year_n do_v by_o moses_n expound_v to_o the_o church_n the_o word_n of_o the_o law_n which_o he_o speak_v in_o mount_n sina_n to_o the_o whole_a congregation_n of_o israe●l_n write_v they_o in_o two_o table_n which_o moses_n leave_v to_o we_o the_o deuteronomie_n and_o certain_a other_o book_n as_o commentary_n upon_o god_n commandment_n after_o that_o immediate_o follow_v the_o prophet_n who_o interpret_n the_o law_n of_o moses_n do_v apply_v it_o to_o the_o time_n place_n and_o man_n of_o their_o age_n and_o leave_v to_o we_o that_o fellow_n their_o sermon_n as_o plain_a exposition_n of_o god_n law_n in_o the_o eight_o word_n chapter_n of_o nehemias_n we_o read_v these_o word_n esdras_n the_o priest_n bring_v the_o law_n the_o book_n of_o moses_n and_o stand_v upon_o a_o turret_n make_v of_o wood_n that_o be_v in_o the_o holy_a pulpit_n and_o esdras_n open_v the_o book_n before_o the_o congregation_n of_o man_n and_o woman_n &_o who_o soever_o else_o have_v any_o understanding_n and_o the_o levite_n stand_v with_o he_o so_o that_o he_o read_v out_o of_o the_o book_n and_o the_o levit_v instruct_v the_o people_n in_o the_o law_n &_o the_o people_n stand_v in_o their_o place_n and_o they_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n distinct_o expound_v the_o sense_n and_o cause_v they_o to_o understand_v the_o read_n thus_o much_o in_o the_o book_n of_o nehemias_n mark_n here_o by_o the_o way_n my_o brethren_n that_o the_o lawful_a and_o holy_a minister_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o do_v also_o expound_v it_o this_o manner_n of_o read_v and_o expound_v the_o scripture_n or_o word_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v neither_o abrogate_v nor_o contemn_v when_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n he_o do_v as_o a_o true_a prophet_n and_o heavenly_a master_n instruct_v the_o people_n of_o his_o church_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o enter_v into_o the_o synagogue_n at_o nazareth_n he_o stand_v up_o to_o read_v and_o there_o be_v deliver_v to_o he_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n so_o he_o open_v the_o book_n and_o read_v a_o certain_a notable_a place_n out_o of_o the_o lxj_o chapter_n then_o shut_v the_o book_n he_o give_v it_o to_o the_o minister_n again_o and_o expound_v that_o which_o he_o have_v read_v declare_v how_o that_o in_o himself_o now_o that_o prophecy_n be_v fulfil_v moreover_o after_o that_o he_o be_v rise_v from_o death_n he_o join_v himself_o in_o company_n
heaven_n daniel_n also_o in_o his_o prophecy_n describe_v 7._o the_o rise_n and_o fall_n of_o all_o kingdom_n &_o of_o antichrist_n also_o but_o attribute_v no_o end_n to_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o holy_a people_n but_o witness_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v everlasting_a the_o same_o do_v the_o prophet_n zacharie_n also_o in_o his_o 12._o chapter_n for_o the_o saint_n reign_v on_o the_o earth_n by_o christ_n and_o be_v translate_v from_o the_o earth_n into_o heaven_n they_o shall_v reign_v together_o with_o their_o king_n christ_n for_o ever_o and_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_v oftentimes_o to_o speak_v of_o one_o of_o these_o kingdom_n only_o of_o both_o these_o kingdom_n we_o understand_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n first_o of_o all_o that_o which_o be_v speak_v by_o our_o sautour_n when_o you_o pray_v say_v oh_o our_o father_n which_o 6._o art_n in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n thy_o kingdom_n come_v for_o we_o pray_v you_o he_o will_v reign_v in_o we_o while_o we_o live_v on_o earth_n that_o we_o also_o may_v reign_v over_o the_o world_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o we_o be_v not_o rule_v by_o satan_n neither_o that_o sin_n reign_n in_o we_o but_o rather_o that_o we_o here_o be_v govern_v by_o himself_o may_v in_o time_n to_o come_v reign_n with_o christ_n in_o heaven_n contrariwise_o what_o manner_n of_o kingdom_n the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v it_o appear_v by_o consider_v be_v the_o head_n or_o the_o king_n and_o prince_n thereof_o which_o be_v the_o devil_n the_o author_n of_o sin_n of_o uncleanness_n and_o of_o death_n he_o reign_v in_o the_o world_n the_o prince_n doubtless_o of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o darkness_n not_o that_o god_n and_o his_o christ_n be_v not_o king_n of_o all_o thing_n but_o because_o unfaithful_a apostate_n through_o their_o own_o proper_a malice_n revolt_a from_o god_n to_o the_o devil_n do_v appoint_v he_o for_o their_o prince_n to_o who_o even_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n they_o submit_v and_o yield_v themselves_o to_o be_v govern_v live_a in_o all_o ungodliness_n wickedness_n and_o uncleanness_n frame_v themselves_o like_a to_o their_o head_n the_o devil_n with_o who_o they_o shall_v be_v punish_v everlasting_o in_o the_o world_n to_o come_v as_o in_o this_o world_n they_o have_v suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v govern_v of_o he_o do_v his_o will._n this_o prince_n of_o this_o world_n else_o where_o also_o call_v the_o god_o of_o this_o world_n have_v christ_n the_o true_a king_n and_o monarch_n of_o the_o world_n overcome_v 12._o and_o have_v destroy_v his_o kingdom_n not_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v as_o long_o as_o this_o world_n endure_v but_o 3._o that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v the_o elect_a satan_n do_v live_v and_o shall_v live_v for_o ever_o how_o be_v it_o in_o misery_n which_o life_n in_o very_a ●e●e_n be_v death_n but_o he_o have_v no_o power_n against_o they_o in_o be_v redeem_v by_o christ_n the_o prince_n he_o have_v and_o shall_v have_v a_o kingdom_n even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n but_o in_o the_o child_n of_o unbelief_n this_o kingdom_n also_o in_o this_o world_n be_v in_o decay_a &_o as_o it_o be_v momentany_a &_o for_o a_o short_a time_n for_o the_o world_n pass_v away_o &_o all_o worldly_a thing_n perish_v but_o all_o the_o elect_a of_o god_n be_v very_a stranger_n from_o this_o kingdom_n yea_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v swear_v enemy_n of_o this_o kingdom_n neither_o can_v the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n by_o his_o power_n pull_v away_o the_o partaker_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n into_o his_o kingdom_n of_o iniquity_n true_o he_o go_v about_o this_o diligent_o and_o with_o diverse_a tentation_n vex_v the_o elect_a but_o those_o overcome_v through_o he_o which_o in_o time_n past_o vanquish_a the_o false_a king_n &_o prince_n of_o thief_n and_o teach_v we_o that_o despise_v this_o filthy_a prince_n &_o the_o world_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o world_n give_v our_o mind_n to_o innocence_n we_o shall_v yield_v ourselves_o to_o the_o good_a spirit_n to_o be_v govern_v these_o thing_n have_v i_o thus_o far_o declare_v as_o brief_o as_o i_o can_v touch_v the_o king_n christ_n &_o his_o only_a and_o everlasting_a kingdom_n and_o now_o ▪_o christ_n our_o lord_n be_v a_o priest_n yea_o that_o chief_a only_o and_o everlasting_a priest_n who_o the_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o old_a people_n do_v prefigure_v &_o shadow_v out_o for_o david_n in_o his_o song_n altogether_o divine_a say_v the_o lord_n swear_v &_o will_v not_o repent_v 110._o he_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n which_o word_n the_o bless_a apostle_n allege_v and_o expound_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o 6._o hebrew_n have_v leave_v these_o word_n write_v the_o forerunner_n say_v he_o be_v for_o we_o enter_v into_o heaven_n after_o the_o order_n 14._o of_o melchizedek_n make_v a_o priest_n forever_o for_o this_o melchizedek_n king_n of_o salem_n priest_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n who_o meet_v abraham_n come_v from_o the_o slaughter_n or_o king_n &_o bless_v he_o to_o who_o also_o abraham_n give_v the_o ten_o of_o all_o thing_n who_o first_o indeed_o be_v call_v by_o interpretation_n the_o king_n of_o righteousness_n they_o also_o king_n of_o salem_n which_o be_v king_n of_o peace_n of_o a_o unknown_a father_n of_o a_o unknown_a mother_n of_o unknown_a kin_n neither_o have_v beginning_n of_o day_n nor_o end_n of_o life_n but_o liken_v to_o the_o son_n of_o god_n remain_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o sure_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v both_o a_o righteous_a and_o peaceable_a king_n and_o the_o righteousness_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o he_o be_v that_o everlasting_a priest_n who_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n without_o seed_n of_o man_n &_o therefore_o of_o a_o unknown_a father_n and_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n beget_v of_o the_o father_n &_o therefore_o of_o a_o unknown_a mother_n and_o unspeakable_o beget_v from_o everlasting_a and_o therefore_o of_o unknown_a kin_n have_v neither_o beginning_n nor_o end_n of_o life_n for_o albeit_o according_a to_o his_o humanity_n he_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_v yet_o according_a to_o his_o divinity_n he_o remain_v god_n immortal_a &_o everlasting_a the_o self_n same_o which_o be_v a_o king_n be_v also_o acknowledge_v a_o priest_n not_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_z but_o according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedek_n for_o as_o the_o scripture_n remember_v this_o one_o a_o priest_n so_o one_o christ_n remain_v priest_n for_o ever_o have_v a_o everlasting_a priesthood_n but_o high_a priest_n in_o time_n past_o be_v call_v &_o anoint_v they_o do_v not_o thrust_v then selue_o into_o such_o a_o office_n by_o force_n or_o deceit_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n say_v no_o man_n take_v the_o honour_n 5._o to_o himself_o but_o he_o that_o be_v call_v of_o god_n as_o be_v aaron_n so_o also_o christ_n take_v not_o glory_n to_o himself_o to_o be_v make_v high_a priest_n but_o be_v make_v &_o confirm_v of_o he_o who_o say_v unto_o he_o thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o as_o he_o say_v also_o in_o another_o place_n ●_o thou_o be_v a_o priest_n forever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchizedech_n but_o thou_o do_v not_o where_o read_v that_o that_o our_o priest_n be_v anoint_v with_o visible_a oil_n for_o he_o amnoynt_v be_v anoint_v with_o invisible_a oil_n namely_o with_o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_z the_o prophet_n witness_v thy_o god_n have_v anoint_v thou_o with_o the_o oil_n of_o gladness_n above_o thy_o fellow_n and_o again_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o 45._o i_o for_o the_o lord_n have_v anoint_v i_o &_o send_v i_o to_o preach_v good_a tiding_n unto_o 61._o the_o poor_a furthermore_o when_o we_o read_v that_o the_o office_n of_o priest_n in_o time_n past_a be_v to_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n to_o teach_v the_o people_n to_o make_v intercession_n between_o god_n &_o man_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o people_n and_o to_o bless_v they_o to_o sacrifice_v also_o and_o to_o consecrate_v or_o sanctify_v &_o that_o now_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o lawful_a priest_n it_o be_v certain_a y_fw-fr he_o be_v tie_v to_o the_o self_n same_o office_n but_o indeed_o to_o so_o much_o more_o excellent_a than_o these_o by_o how_o much_o he_o have_v obtain_v a_o more_o excellent_a priesthood_n those_o priest_n after_o the_o order_n of_o aaron_n priest_n serve_v in_o the_o corruptible_fw-fr &_o figurative_a tabernacle_n but_o our_o lord_n be_v take_v up_o into_o the_o true_a tabernacle_n heaven_n itself_o minister_v to_o all_o the_o saint_n of_o god_n for_o
office_n and_o duty_n of_o pastor_n than_o if_o they_o shall_v set_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n a_o company_n of_o idol_n for_o who_o dare_v deny_v but_o that_o a_o great_a part_n yea_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n since_o gregory_n the_o great_a be_v such_o manner_n of_o idol_n such_o kind_n of_o wolf_n and_o devourer_n as_o be_v describe_v by_o the_o prophet_n zacharie_n what_o than_o i_o pray_v you_o can_v the_o continual_a succession_n of_o such_o false_a pastor_n prove_v yea_o and_o they_o which_o be_v of_o the_o late_a time_n do_v they_o not_o fill_v almost_o the_o universal_a church_n with_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n and_o partly_o oppress_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o partly_o persecute_v it_o in_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o israelite_n there_o be_v a_o continual_a order_n of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n without_o any_o interruption_n thereof_o even_o from_o aaron_n to_o urias_n who_o live_v under_o achas_n and_o to_o other_o wicked_a bishop_n also_o fall_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n yea_o and_o also_o idolatry_n but_o for_o all_o that_o that_o succession_n do_v not_o prove_v the_o idolatrous_a bishop_n with_o the_o church_n that_o cleave_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v the_o true_a bishop_n of_o god_n and_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n true_o the_o true_a prophet_n of_o god_n the_o sound_n &_o catholic_a father_n preach_v only_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o man_n tradition_n yea_o clean_o against_o all_o tradition_n be_v not_o able_a to_o reckon_v up_o any_o continual_a succession_n of_o priest_n their_o predecessor_n to_o who_o they_o themselves_o shall_v succeed_v &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v most_o excellent_a light_n &_o worthy_a member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n &_o they_o which_o believe_v their_o doctrine_n be_v neither_o schismatic_n nor_o heretic_n but_o even_o to_o this_o day_n be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n when_o christ_n our_o lord_n the_o bless_a son_n of_o god_n do_v teach_v here_o on_o earth_n &_o gather_v together_o his_o church_n the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v on_o his_o adversary_n part_n but_o they_o for_o that_o cause_n be_v not_o ruler_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n &_o christ_n of_o the_o heretical_a church_n the_o apostle_n of_o our_o lord_n can_v not_o allege_v for_o then selue_o &_o their_o doctrine_n a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n not_o interrupt_v for_o they_o be_v ordain_v of_o the_o lord_n who_o be_v also_o himself_o create_v of_o god_n the_o high_a priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o new_a order_n of_o melchisedech_n without_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o order_n of_o levy_v &_o yet_o the_o church_n y_fw-es be_v gather_v by_o they_o be_v acknowledge_v of_o all_o man_n to_o be_v the_o true_a &_o holy_a church_n the_o apostle_n themselves_o will_v have_v none_o other_o to_o be_v account_v for_o their_o true_a fellow_n &_o successor_n but_o those_o who_o walk_v upright_o in_o the_o doctrine_n &_o way_n of_o christ_n for_o notable_a &_o manifest_a be_v the_o say_v of_o paul_n be_v you_o the_o follower_n of_o i_o even_o as_o i_o be_o of_o christ_n 11._o and_o though_o he_o speak_v these_o word_n to_o all_o the_o faithful_a &_o not_o only_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n yet_o those_o will_v he_o chief_o have_v such_o follower_n of_o he_o as_z the_o residue_n of_o common_a christian_n that_o be_v to_o say_v every_o man_n in_o his_o vocation_n &_o calling_n the_o same_o apostle_n speak_v at_o miletum_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n among_o other_o thing_n say_v i_o know_v this_o that_o after_o my_o depart_n shall_v grievous_a 2d_o wolf_n enter_v in_o among_o you_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n moreover_o of_o your_o own_o self_n shall_v man_n arise_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o paul_n y_fw-fr apostle_n not_o from_o any_o other_o place_n than_o out_o of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n itself_o yea_o out_o of_o the_o company_n or_o assembly_n of_o apostolic_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n fetch_v out_o of_o the_o wolf_n and_o devourer_n of_o the_o church_n but_o can_v not_o these_o think_v you_o allege_v the_o apostolic_a succession_n for_o themselves_o and_o their_o most_o corrupt_a cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v descend_v from_o apostolic_a pastor_n but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o forsake_v the_o truth_n they_o be_v fal●e_v from_o the_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o offspring_n and_o apostolical_a succession_n do_v nothing_o at_o all_o make_v for_o they_o therefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n by_o itself_o prove_v nothing_o yea_o rather_o that_o that_o be_v no_o lawful_a succession_n which_o want_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o tertullian_n great_o esteem_v and_o that_o worthy_o pastor_n the_o continual_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n yet_o require_v the_o same_o to_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o sincerity_n of_o apostolic_a doctrine_n yea_o he_o acknowledge_v those_o church_n which_o be_v instruct_v with_o pure_a doctrine_n and_o yet_o not_o able_a to_o make_v any_o reckon_n of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v apostolic_a church_n if_o any_o man_n require_v the_o word_n of_o the_o author_n they_o be_v these_o but_o if_o there_o be_v any_o church_n that_o dare_v presume_v to_o plant_v themselves_o in_o the_o very_a age_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o therefore_o they_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v be_v plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n because_o they_o be_v under_o the_o apostle_n we_o may_v say_v thus_o let_v they_o bring_v forth_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o their_o church_n let_v they_o turn_v over_o the_o order_n of_o succession_n of_o their_o bishop_n so_o by_o succession_n go_v from_o the_o first_o beginning_n that_o that_o first_o bishop_n of_o they_o may_v be_v find_v to_o have_v for_o his_o author_n and_o predecessor_n some_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a sort_n of_o man_n and_o yet_o such_o a_o one_o as_o continue_v with_o the_o apostle_n for_o by_o this_o mean_v the_o apostolic_a church_n give_v their_o judgement_n as_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n testify_v that_o they_o have_v polycarpus_n place_v there_o by_o s._n john_n and_o as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v that_o clemens_n be_v appoint_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o as_o in_o like_a sort_n also_o other_o do_v show_v for_o themselves_o who_o have_v their_o offspring_n of_o apostolic_a seed_n place_v in_o their_o byshoprick_n by_o the_o apostle_n let_v heretic_n fain_o some_o such_o matter_n for_o after_o their_o blasphemy_n what_o be_v unlawful_a for_o they_o but_o albeit_o they_o do_v fain_o they_o shall_v not_o prevail_v for_o their_o own_o doctrine_n be_v compare_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o diversity_n &_o contrariety_n thereof_o shall_v show_v that_o it_o have_v neither_o apostle_n nor_o apostolical_a man_n for_o the_o author_n because_o as_o the_o apostle_n teach_v nothing_o that_o be_v contrary_a among_o then selue_o even_o so_o apostolical_a man_n set_v forth_o nothing_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n but_o only_o such_o as_o fall_v away_o from_o the_o apostle_n and_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n in_o this_o manner_n therefore_o may_v those_o church_n appeal_v who_o albeit_o they_o can_v bring_v for_o their_o author_n none_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n as_o those_o that_o be_v of_o far_o late_a time_n &_o be_v but_o now_o daily_o erect_v yet_o they_o agree_v in_o one_o faith_n be_v nevertheless_o count_v apostolical_a for_o the_o likeness_n of_o the_o doctrine_n the_o self_n same_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o ancient_a church_n rome_n of_o rome_n and_o gather_v the_o sum_n of_o that_o it_o either_o teach_v or_o learn_v say_v happy_a be_v that_o church_n to_o which_o the_o apostle_n have_v utter_v all_o their_o doctrine_n with_o their_o blood_n where_o peter_n in_o suffer_v be_v make_v like_o to_o the_o lord_n where_o paul_n be_v crown_v with_o the_o like_a end_n that_o john_n have_v where_o the_o apostle_n john_n after_o that_o he_o be_v plunge_v in_o hot_a scald_a oil_n feel_v no_o pain_n &_o be_v banish_v into_o the_o isle_n let_v we_o see_v what_o it_o learn_v and_o what_o it_o teach_v &_o how_o it_o do_v agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n it_o acknowledge_v one_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o all_o thing_n &_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o creator_n bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n &_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o flesh_n it_o join_v the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o euamgelist_n &_o apostle_n &_o from_o they_o drink_v that_o faith_n baptise_v with_o water_n clothe_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n feed_v
paul_n baptize_v as_o a_o minister_n &_o not_o as_o one_o that_o have_v power_n of_o himself_o but_o the_o lord_n baptize_v as_o he_o that_o have_v power_n of_o himself_o behold_v if_o it_o have_v please_v he_o he_o can_v have_v give_v this_o power_n to_o his_o servant_n but_o he_o will_v not_o for_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v give_v this_o power_n unto_o his_o servant_n that_o it_o shall_v also_o have_v be_v they_o which_o be_v the_o lord_n than_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v as_o many_o sundry_a baptism_n as_o servant_n etc_n etc_n in_o the_o church_n christ_n reserve_v that_o absolute_a power_n to_o himself_o for_o he_o continue_v the_o head_n king_n &_o bishop_n of_o the_o church_n for_o ever_o neither_o be_v that_o head_n which_o give_v life_n separate_v from_o his_o body_n at_o any_o time_n but_o that_o limit_v power_n he_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o church_n which_o thing_n it_o ought_v to_o acknowledge_v to_o wit_n a_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n hem_v in_o with_o certain_a law_n which_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n it_o be_v effectual_a and_o therefore_o in_o all_o thing_n ought_v to_o have_v chief_a regard_n unto_o god_n and_o that_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v for_o that_o purpose_n give_v unto_o the_o church_n that_o it_o may_v be_v put_v in_o practice_n for_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o church_n for_o s._n paul_n 12._o say_v the_o lord_n have_v give_v we_o power_n to_o the_o intent_n we_o shall_v edify_v &_o not_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n and_o therefore_o that_o power_n which_o tend_v to_o the_o hindrance_n and_o destruction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o devilish_a tyranny_n and_o not_o a_o ecclesiastical_a power_n proceed_v from_o god_n and_o it_o behove_v we_o diligent_o to_o mark_v and_o retain_v this_o end_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n but_o the_o limit_v power_n of_o the_o church_n consist_v consist_v very_o near_o in_o these_o point_n to_o wit_n in_o ordain_v of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n in_o doctrine_n and_o in_o the_o discern_a between_o doctrine_n and_o final_o in_o the_o order_n of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n of_o every_o one_o of_o which_o point_n in_o their_o order_n we_o will_v speak_v a_o little_a declare_v what_o manner_n of_o authority_n the_o church_n have_v and_o how_o far_o it_o be_v limit_v in_o every_o part_n thereof_o the_o lord_n himself_o appoint_v the_o ▪_o chief_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v the_o apostle_n that_o all_o man_n may_v understand_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v the_o divine_a institution_n of_o god_n himself_o and_o not_o a_o tradition_n devise_v by_o man_n and_o therefore_o after_o that_o the_o lord_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n s._n peter_n call_v the_o church_n together_o speak_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o place_v 1._o a_o other_o apostle_n in_o the_o steed_n of_o the_o traitor_n judas_n by_o that_o very_a fact_n show_v that_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o god_n to_o elect_v minister_n or_o teacher_n the_o same_o church_n also_o not_o long_o after_o by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n so_o persuade_v undoubted_o by_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n choose_v seven_o deacon_n the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v manifest_o instruct_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v ordain_v and_o send_v paul_n and_o barnabas_n although_o they_o be_v long_o before_o that_o 6._o time_n assign_v to_o the_o ministry_n it_o be_v read_v also_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n 13._o that_o the_o church_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v ordain_v doctor_n for_o the_o holy_a ministry_n as_o often_o as_o need_v require_v and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o do_v not_o ordain_v every_o one_o without_o choice_n but_o such_o only_a as_o be_v fit_a for_o that_o office_n that_o be_v to_o say_v such_o as_o afterward_o by_o express_a law_n they_o themselves_o do_v describe_v to_o wit_n if_o any_o man_n be_v faultless_a the_o husband_n 3._o of_o one_o wife_n watchful_a sober_a etc_n etc_n the_o rule_n set_v down_o by_o the_o apostle_n be_v sufficient_o know_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o 1._o to_o tim._n 3._o cap._n but_o as_o touch_v the_o ordain_v of_o minister_n god_n will_v we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o three_o sermon_n of_o this_o decade_n but_o if_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v power_n to_o appoint_v fit_a minister_n for_o the_o church_n i_o think_v no_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o the_o church_n have_v authority_n to_o depose_v the_o unworthy_a &_o wicked_a deceiver_n and_o also_o to_o correct_v and_o amend_v those_o thing_n which_o being_n lack_v may_v seem_v necessary_a for_o this_o order_n and_o forasmuch_o as_o minister_n be_v choose_v chief_o to_o teach_v it_o must_v follow_v teach_v that_o the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o teach_v to_o exhort_v to_o comfort_v and_o such_o like_a by_o her_o lawful_a minister_n and_o yet_o no_o power_n to_o teach_v every_o thing_n but_o that_o only_a which_o she_o receive_v be_v deliver_v unto_o she_o from_o the_o lord_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n teach_v they_o say_v the_o lord_n that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o go_v you_o and_o preach_v 28._o the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n and_o s._n 16._o paul_n say_v i_o be_o put_v a_o part_n to_o preach_v 1._o the_o gospel_n of_o god_n which_o he_o promise_v before_o by_o his_o prophet_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o this_o ministry_n &_o office_n of_o preach_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n which_o the_o 10._o church_n have_v receive_v the_o office_n i_o say_v of_o bind_v and_o lose_v of_o open_v &_o shut_v heaven_n in_o another_o place_n also_o the_o apostle_n receive_v power_n from_o the_o lord_n over_o all_o over_o all_o i_o say_v not_o absolute_o but_o over_o all_o devil_n and_o not_o over_o all_o angel_n and_o man_n and_o yet_o that_o authority_n and_o power_n they_o receive_v over_o devil_n they_o receive_v it_o not_o absolute_o for_o it_o be_v add_v unto_o it_o that_o they_o shall_v expel_v and_o cast_v they_o out_o and_o therefore_o they_o can_v not_o deal_v with_o diúel_v after_o their_o own_o fancy_n but_o that_o only_a &_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o d●e_v who_o have_v absolute_a power_n over_o all_o devil_n and_o that_o they_o may_v cast_v devil_n out_o of_o man_n but_o not_o to_o send_v they_o into_o man_n though_o they_o will_v have_v desire_v it_o never_o so_o much_o and_o so_o also_o as_o touch_v disease_n they_o can_v not_o do_v what_o they_o will_v else_o will_v not_o s._n paul_n have_v leave_v trophimos_n sick_a at_o miletum_n who_o may_v 4_o so_o great_o have_v be_v profitable_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n the_o two_o 9_o disciple_n if_o they_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v do_v what_o they_o will_v will_v have_v command_v fire_n from_o heaven_n to_o have_v fall_v down_o upon_o samaria_n and_o so_o will_v have_v take_v vengeance_n of_o the_o uncourteous_a and_o barbarous_a people_n of_o samaria_n for_o that_o they_o deny_v to_o harbour_v the_o lord_n christ_n in_o like_a manner_n those_o same_o apostle_n receive_v key_n that_o be_v to_o say_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o to_o lose_v to_o open_v and_o shut_v heaven_n to_o forgive_v and_o to_o retain_v sin_n but_o perfect_o limit_v for_o they_o can_v not_o lose_v y_fw-fr which_o be_v bind_v in_o hell_n neither_o bound_v they_o that_o be_v live_v in_o heaven_n for_o he_o say_v not_o what_o soever_o you_o bind_v in_o heaven_n but_o whatsoever_o you_o bind_v upon_o earth_n neither_o say_v he_o whatsoever_o you_o lose_v in_o hell_n but_o what_o soever_o you_o lose_v upon_o earth_n again_o they_o be_v not_o able_a either_o to_o bind_v or_o lose_v who_o they_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o upon_o earth_n for_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o lose_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o pronounce_v a_o man_n free_a from_o sin_n that_o be_v without_o faith_n again_o they_o can_v not_o bind_v that_o be_v say_v pronounce_v condemn_v he_o that_o be_v lighten_v with_o faith_n &_o be_v true_o penitent_a and_o sure_o such_o as_o teach_v other_o doctrine_n than_o this_o touch_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n deceive_v the_o whole_a world_n of_o which_o we_o will_v more_o large_o entreat_v in_o place_n convenient_a likewise_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v sacrament_n power_n from_o christ_n to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n by_o minister_n but_o not_o according_a to_o her_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n but_o according_a to_o god_n will_v and_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n set_v down_o by_o the_o lord_n himself_o the_o church_n can_v institute_v sacrament_n neither_o yet_o alter_v the_o end_n &_o use_v of_o the_o sacrament_n final_o that_o the_o church_n have_v
in_o the_o ministry_n itself_o and_o what_o god_n he_o very_o for_o his_o exceed_a goodness_n and_o mercy_n towards_o we_o covet_v churape_n to_o pour_v himself_o whole_o into_o we_o which_o i_o think_v good_a to_o repeat_v often_o that_o it_o may_v be_v the_o deep_o root_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o that_o we_o also_o may_v bethink_v ourselves_o what_o we_o owe_v unto_o god_n that_o we_o may_v both_o be_v strengthen_v and_o bless_v in_o he_o and_o may_v perfect_o understand_v his_o will_n to_o uswarde_v and_o final_o our_o duty_n whereby_o we_o be_v bind_v unto_o he_o as_o he_o therefore_o further_v our_o salvation_n very_o diligent_o in_o all_o thing_n so_o lest_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o thing_n want_v to_o true_a doctrine_n he_o himself_o come_v forth_o to_o instruct_v man_n but_o such_o be_v our_o weakness_n and_o corruption_n through_o sin_n we_o can_v not_o abide_v the_o meeting_n of_o his_o eternal_a &_o wonderful_a majesty_n which_o be_v apparent_a by_o much_o communication_n of_o god_n have_v with_o our_o father_n but_o especial_o at_o his_o meet_v with_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o israel_n in_o mount_n sina_n for_o when_o he_o come_v down_o on_o the_o mount_n not_o without_o glory_n and_o heavenly_a majesty_n and_o utter_v with_o his_o own_o mouth_n a_o brief_a sum_n of_o his_o whole_a religion_n and_o of_o all_o the_o law_n which_o sum_n we_o call_v the_o decalogue_n or_o ten_o commandment_n the_o people_n be_v astony_v with_o his_o divine_a majesty_n say_v unto_o moses_n talk_v thou_o with_o we_o and_o we_o will_v hear_v but_o let_v 20._o not_o god_n talk_v with_o we_o lest_o we_o die_v and_o god_n receive_v this_o offer_n say_v 5._o i_o have_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o word_n of_o this_o people_n which_o they_o have_v speak_v unto_o thou_o they_o have_v well_o say_v all_o that_o they_o have_v speak_v oh_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o heart_n in_o they_o that_o they_o will_v fear_v i_o etc_n etc_n in_o so_o much_o that_o this_o manner_n of_o teach_v by_o man_n which_o man_n themselves_o have_v choose_v for_o themselves_o god_n will_v have_v to_o be_v perpetual_a and_o never_o to_o be_v break_v so_o as_o when_o he_o send_v his_o son_n into_o the_o world_n he_o clothe_v he_o with_o flesh_n that_o he_o may_v after_o that_o manner_n speak_v unto_o we_o by_o he_o god_n in_o deed_n may_v by_o the_o secret_a church_n illumination_n of_o his_o spirit_n without_o man_n ministry_n as_o his_o power_n be_v tie_v to_o no_o creature_n regenerate_v the_o whole_a world_n and_o govern_v the_o church_n itself_o but_o as_o he_o despise_v not_o his_o creature_n nor_o destroy_v the_o work_n of_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o do_v all_o thing_n in_o order_n even_o so_o from_o the_o first_o beginning_n he_o forthwith_o speak_v to_o the_o world_n by_o patriarch_n then_o by_o prophet_n afterward_o by_o apostle_n neither_o at_o this_o day_n cease_v he_o to_o give_v unto_o the_o world_n doctor_n and_o pastor_n so_o that_o it_o become_v we_o not_o to_o tempt_v god_n that_o be_v not_o to_o look_v for_o a_o secret_a inspiration_n with_o the_o heretic_n enthusiastae_fw-la but_o to_o acknowledge_v a_o just_a order_n and_o that_o god_n himself_o speak_v unto_o we_o by_o man_n of_o who_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o learn_v religion_n the_o eunuch_n of_o candace_n queen_n of_o aethiopia_n do_v read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o lord_n can_v have_v teach_v 8_o he_o by_o secret_a inspiration_n the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n but_o he_o give_v he_o philip_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n and_o a_o interpreter_n likewise_o paul_n the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n take_v up_o into_o the_o third_o 1_n heaven_n and_o instruct_v by_o christ_n himself_o not_o by_o man_n of_o all_o the_o principle_n of_o our_o religion_n be_v nevertheless_o refer_v over_o unto_o a_o man_n call_v ananias_n the_o angel_n of_o god_n be_v send_v to_o cornelius_n captain_n of_o the_o italian_a band_n be_v 10._o at_o caesarea_n which_o may_v have_v instruct_v he_o in_o all_o point_n of_o true_a religion_n but_o he_o will_v he_o to_o call_v for_o peter_n the_o apostle_n he_o say_v the_o angel_n will_v tell_v thou_o what_o thou_o must_v do_v 9_o for_o this_o cause_n minister_n be_v call_v saviour_n they_o be_v say_v to_o convert_v man_n their_o word_n be_v call_v not_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o the_o word_n of_o god_n he_o which_o despise_v they_o seem_v to_o despise_v god_n himself_o it_o be_v also_o say_v that_o they_o themselves_o do_v bind_v and_o loose_v and_o retain_v and_o forgive_v sin_n for_o abdias_n the_o prophet_n say_v that_o saviour_n shall_v ascend_v into_o the_o mount_n zion_n which_o many_o interpret_v of_o the_o apostle_n paul_n plead_v before_o king_n agrippa_n and_o rehearse_v the_o word_n 26._o of_o god_n which_o come_v unto_o he_o in_o a_o vision_n say_v ●_o send_v thou_o unto_o the_o gentile_n to_o open_v their_o eye_n that_o they_o may_v be_v turn_v from_o darkness_n to_o light_n etc_n etc_n and_o gabriel_n the_o archangel_n say_v before_o that_o speak_n of_o john_n he_o shall_v go_v before_o the_o lord_n with_o 1._o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n of_o elias_n to_o turn_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o child_n and_o the_o disobedient_a to_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o just_a man_n moreover_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o thessaly_n we_o thank_v 2._o god_n say_v he_o because_o when_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o we_o the_o word_n of_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o be_v in_o deed_n the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o work_v also_o in_o you_o that_o believe_v again_o he_o therefore_o that_o despise_v these_o thing_n 4._o despise_v not_o man_n but_o god_n who_o have_v even_o give_v you_o his_o holy_a spirit_n for_o the_o lord_n say_v in_o the_o gospel_n 10._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o and_o he_o that_o despise_v you_o despise_v i_o and_o again_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o shall_v loose_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v loose_v in_o heaven_n 16._o and_o what_o so_o ever_o you_o shall_v bind_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n and_o again_o who_o sin_n so_o ever_o you_o remit_v they_o be_v remit_v unto_o they_o 20._o and_o who_o sin_n so_o ever_o you_o do_v retain_v they_o be_v retain_v but_o some_o wrest_v these_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o the_o natural_a minister_v sense_n do_v give_v the_o minister_n a_o equal_a power_n in_o a_o manner_n with_o christ_n and_o that_o which_o only_o pertain_v unto_o he_o they_o communicate_v also_o unto_o they_o but_o they_o say_v that_o by_o such_o mean_v the_o ministry_n must_v be_v set_v out_o lest_o it_o wax_v vile_a and_o of_o no_o estimation_n among_o profane_a man_n othersome_a again_o so_o speak_v of_o the_o inward_a draw_v of_o the_o spirit_n that_o they_o seem_v as_o it_o be_v to_o make_v superfluous_a or_o to_o take_v clean_o away_o the_o outward_a ministry_n and_o to_o attribute_v nothing_o at_o all_o unto_o it_o therefore_o the_o ministry_n must_v be_v limit_v with_o his_o bound_n jest_n it_o be_v draw_v hither_o and_o thither_o with_o the_o affection_n and_o lust_n of_o man_n and_o either_o too_o much_o or_o too_o little_a be_v attribute_v unto_o it_o let_v the_o ministry_n in_o deed_n be_v beautify_v and_o keep_v in_o authority_n but_o let_v it_o be_v do_v without_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n neither_o in_o deed_n become_v it_o we_o under_o the_o pretence_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o attribute_v that_o to_o man_n labour_n which_o be_v only_a god_n office_n on_o who_o all_o man_n ought_v to_o depend_v and_o unto_o who_o as_o the_o only_a wellspring_n and_o giver_n of_o all_o goodness_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v respect_n therefore_o the_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n ought_v only_o to_o have_v regard_n hereunto_o that_o they_o may_v keep_v the_o glory_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n unblemished_a and_o his_o priesthood_n sound_a unto_o himself_o in_o every_o point_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n himself_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o true_a tabernacle_n which_o god_n pight_v and_o not_o man_n remain_v a_o priest_n yea_o the_o only_a high_a priest_n of_o his_o church_n for_o ever_o execute_v as_o yet_o all_o the_o duty_n of_o a_o priest_n in_o the_o church_n for_o he_o as_o the_o only_a teacher_n and_o master_n in_o the_o church_n teach_v his_o disciple_n that_o be_v the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o the_o faithful_a indue_a they_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n regenerate_v and_o draw_v they_o sanctify_v and_o make_v they_o free_a from_o their_o sin_n which_o thing_n the_o scripture_n in_o every_o place_n plain_o teach_v this_o 〈◊〉_d glory_n this_o power_n he_o
their_o tributary_n city_n subject_v unto_o they_o diligent_o to_o see_v and_o mark_v what_o they_o do_v in_o every_o city_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v spy_n and_o watchman_n the_o apostle_n call_v bishop_n watchman_n and_o keeper_n of_o the_o lord_n flock_v and_o the_o steward_n of_o christ_n or_o disposer_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o god_n in_o the_o church_n and_o presbyter_n a_o elder_a have_v his_o name_n elder_n of_o age_n and_o ancient_a year_n in_o time_n past_a the_o care_n of_o the_o common_a wealth_n be_v commit_v unto_o the_o elder_n as_o to_o those_o that_o be_v exercise_v with_o manifold_a experience_n &_o long_o use_v of_o thing_n for_o governor_n of_o city_n be_v both_o call_v senior_n and_o senator_n and_o as_o common_a weal_n have_v their_o senator_n so_o have_v the_o church_n her_o elder_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o act_n 14._o 15._o 20._o &_o 21._o chap._n it_o seem_v that_o the_o ordain_v of_o elder_n come_v into_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n for_o thus_o we_o read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o number_n gather_v unto_o 11._o i_o say_v he_o three_o score_n and_o ten_o man_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o israel_n who_o thou_o know_v to_o be_v the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n and_o officer_n over_o they_o and_o i_o will_v take_v of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v upon_o thou_o and_o put_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o shall_v bear_v the_o burden_n of_o the_o people_n with_o thou_o lest_o thou_o be_v constrain_v to_o bear_v it_o alone_o wherefore_o the_o elder_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v either_o bishop_n or_o otherwise_o prudent_a and_o learned_a man_n add_v to_o bishop_n that_o they_o may_v the_o more_o easy_o bear_v the_o burden_n lay_v upon_o they_o and_o that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n may_v the_o better_o and_o more_o convenient_o be_v govern_v for_o paul_n say_v the_o elder_n that_o rule_v well_o let_v they_o be_v count_v worthy_a of_o double_a honour_n most_o special_o 6._o they_o which_o labour_n in_o the_o word_n and_o doctrine_n there_o be_v therefore_o certain_a other_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a function_n who_o albeit_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v by_o and_o by_o as_o do_v the_o bishop_n yet_o be_v they_o present_v with_o they_o that_o teach_v in_o all_o all_o business_n perhaps_o they_o be_v call_v of_o the_o same_o apostle_n elsewhere_o 12._o governor_n that_o be_v be_v to_o say_v which_o be_v set_v in_o authority_n concern_v discipline_n and_o other_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n and_o because_o we_o be_v come_v thus_o far_o in_o this_o present_a treatise_n we_o will_v also_o declare_v other_o name_n of_o office_n in_o the_o church_n there_o be_v much_o speech_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o deacon_n and_o among_o deacon_n ecclesiastical_a writer_n of_o priest_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n the_o care_n of_o the_o poor_a be_v commit_v to_o deacon_n as_o it_o be_v plain_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v also_o law_n to_o be_v see_v which_o be_v prescribe_v unto_o they_o by_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n the_o third_o chapter_n the_o office_n of_o deacon_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o function_n of_o pastor_n and_o therefore_o we_o do_v not_o reckon_v they_o in_o the_o order_n of_o pastor_n the_o ancient_a father_n refer_v they_o to_o the_o ministry_n but_o not_o to_o the_o priesthood_n we_o read_v also_o that_o woman_n not_o deacon_n wed_v but_o widow_n minister_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o among_o other_o phebe_n of_o the_o church_n of_o cenc●ea_n 16._o high_o praise_v of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o famous_a but_o he_o forbid_v woman_n 14._o to_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n and_o to_o take_v upon_o they_o public_a office_n how_o therefore_o 2._o or_o in_o what_o thing_n do_v woman_n minister_v in_o the_o church_n undoubted_o they_o minister_v unto_o the_o poor_a in_o duty_n appertain_a to_o woman_n they_o minister_v unto_o the_o sick_a and_o with_o martha_n christ_n hostess_n they_o do_v with_o great_a care_n and_o diligence_n cherish_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n for_o what_o other_o office_n can_v they_o have_v moreover_o the_o name_n of_o priest_n seem_v priest_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n out_o of_o the_o synagogue_n for_o otherwise_o you_o shall_v not_o find_v in_o the_o new_a testament_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_o and_o of_o church_n to_o be_v call_v priest_n but_o after_o that_o sort_n that_o all_o christian_n be_v call_v priest_n by_o the_o 2._o apostle_n peter_n but_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n for_o a_o certain_a likeness_n which_o they_o have_v with_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n be_v call_v priest_n for_o as_o they_o do_v their_o service_n in_o the_o tabernacle_n so_o these_o also_o after_o their_o manner_n and_o their_o fashion_n minister_v to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o otherwise_o the_o latin_a word_n be_v derive_v of_o holy_a thing_n and_o signify_v a_o minister_n of_o holy_a thing_n a_o man_n i_o say_v dedicate_v and_o consecrate_v unto_o god_n to_o do_v holy_a thing_n and_o holy_a thing_n be_v not_o only_a sacrifice_n but_o what_o thing_n so_o ever_o come_v under_o the_o name_n of_o religion_n from_o which_o we_o dee_fw-mi not_o exclude_v the_o law_n themselves_o and_o holy_a doctrine_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n we_o read_v that_o 8._o david_n son_n be_v call_v priest_n not_o that_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o holy_a thing_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o they_o which_o come_v of_o the_o tribe_n of_o juda_n to_o serve_v in_o the_o tabernacle_n but_o only_o to_o the_o levite_n but_o because_o they_o live_v under_o the_o government_n and_o discipline_n of_o priest_n do_v learn_v good_a science_n and_o holy_a divinity_n here_o it_o seem_v it_o must_v not_o be_v dissemble_v that_o those_o name_n which_o we_o name_n have_v entreat_v of_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n one_o use_v for_o a_o other_o for_o peter_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n call_v himself_o a_o elder_n and_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n he_o call_v the_o apostleship_n a_o bishopric_n for_o saint_n paul_n also_o call_v the_o elder_n together_o at_o miletum_n and_o talk_v with_o they_o he_o call_v they_o bishop_n and_o in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o titus_n he_o command_v to_o ordain_v elder_n town_n by_o town_n who_o immediate_o after_o he_o call_v bishop_n and_o that_o they_o also_o be_v call_v both_o doctor_n and_o pastor_n there_o be_v none_o so_o gross_a head_v to_o deny_v now_o by_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o think_v it_o be_v manifest_a to_o all_o man_n what_o order_v church_n the_o lord_n himself_o ordain_v from_o the_o beginning_n and_o who_o he_o have_v consecrate_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n of_o the_o church_n to_o govern_v his_o own_o church_n he_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n at_o the_o beginning_n by_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n he_o enlarge_v and_o maintain_v the_o same_o by_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o these_o elder_n and_o deacon_n be_v helper_n the_o deacon_n in_o see_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o the_o elder_n in_o doctrine_n in_o discipline_n and_o in_o govern_v and_o sustain_v other_o weighty_a affair_n of_o the_o church_n nevertheless_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n be_v ordain_v at_o the_o begin_n by_o the_o lord_n unto_o his_o church_n for_o a_o time_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n person_n and_o place_n for_o many_o age_n since_o and_o immediate_o after_o the_o foundation_n of_o christ_n kingdom_n in_o earth_n the_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n cease_v and_o there_o come_v in_o their_o place_n bishop_n pastor_n doctor_n and_o elder_n which_o order_n have_v continue_v most_o steadfast_o in_o the_o church_n that_o now_o we_o can_v not_o doubt_v that_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n be_v perfect_a and_o the_o government_n absolute_a if_o at_o this_o day_n also_o there_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n bishop_n or_o pastor_n doctor_n also_o or_o elder_n yet_o we_o deny_v not_o that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v oftentimes_o apostle_n raise_v up_o of_o god_o which_o may_v preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o barbarous_a and_o ungodly_a nation_n we_o confess_v also_o that_o god_n even_o at_o this_o day_n be_v able_a to_o raise_v up_o apostle_n evangelist_n and_o prophet_n who_o labour_n he_o may_v use_v to_o work_v the_o salvation_n of_o mankind_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o holy_a and_o faithful_a man_n which_o first_o preach_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o any_o unbelieving_a people_n may_v be_v call_v apostle_n and_o evangelist_n
we_o acknowledge_v y_fw-fr man_n inspire_v with_o singular_a grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o foresee_v &_o foreshow_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o be_v excellent_a interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n or_o divine_n illuminate_v may_v be_v call_v prophet_n as_o we_o have_v show_v elsewhere_o more_o at_o large_a but_o in_o the_o order_n of_o bishop_n and_o elder_n from_o the_o elder_n beginning_n there_o be_v singular_a humility_n charity_n and_o concord_n no_o contention_n or_o strife_n for_o prerogative_n or_o title_n or_o dignity_n for_o all_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o minister_n of_o one_o master_n coequal_a in_o all_o thing_n touch_v office_n or_o charge_n he_o make_v they_o unequal_a not_o in_o office_n but_o in_o gift_n by_o the_o excellency_n of_o gift_n yet_o they_o that_o have_v obtain_v the_o excellent_a gift_n do_v not_o despise_v the_o mean_a sort_n neither_o do_v they_o envy_v they_o for_o their_o gift_n s._n paul_n say_v let_v a_o man_n so_o 4._o esteem_v of_o we_o as_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n and_o disposer_n of_o the_o secret_n of_o god._n the_o same_o paul_n in_o more_o than_o one_o place_n cale_v the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o ministry_n for_o that_o take_v deep_a root_n in_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n heart_n which_o the_o lord_n when_o his_o disciple_n strive_v for_o dignity_n and_o as_o they_o say_v for_o the_o majority_n that_o be_v which_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a set_v a_o child_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o say_v very_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o except_o you_o turn_v and_o 18._o become_v as_o little_a child_n you_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n true_o the_o martyr_n of_o god_n saint_n cyprian_a stand_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o bishop_n at_o carthage_n wise_o say_v neither_o have_v any_o of_o we_o appoint_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o by_o tyrannous_a fear_n compel_v his_o fellow_n in_o office_n to_o necessity_n of_o obey_v since_o every_o bishop_n have_v according_a to_o the_o licence_n and_o liberty_n of_o his_o power_n his_o own_o free_a choice_n as_o if_o he_o may_v not_o be_v judge_v of_o a_o other_o since_o neither_o he_o himself_o can_v judge_v a_o other_o but_o let_v we_o all_o look_n for_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o only_o and_o alone_o have_v power_n both_o to_o prefer_v we_o in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n and_o to_o give_v sentence_n of_o our_o do_v thus_o far_o he_o at_o that_o time_n therefore_o bishop_n contend_v not_o for_o i_o know_v not_o what_o primacy_n or_o patrimony_n of_o peter_n but_o that_o one_o may_v excel_v the_o other_o in_o pureness_n of_o doctrine_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n and_o mutual_o to_o help_v one_o a_o other_o and_o then_o undoubted_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n go_v forward_o prosperous_o in_o so_o much_o that_o though_o the_o most_o puissant_a prince_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v have_v persecute_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n with_o fire_n and_o sword_n yet_o nevertheless_o against_o all_o the_o assault_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o world_n she_o have_v stand_v unmoveable_a have_v win_v the_o victory_n and_o have_v daily_o be_v more_o enlarge_v &_o also_o renown_a oh_o happy_a have_v we_o be_v if_o this_o order_n of_o pastor_n have_v not_o be_v change_v but_o that_o that_o ancient_a simplicity_n of_o minister_n that_o faith_n humility_n and_o diligence_n have_v remain_v uncorrupted_a but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n all_o thing_n sort_n of_o ancient_a soundness_n humility_n and_o simplicity_n vanish_v away_o while_o something_n be_v turn_v upside_o down_o something_n either_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n be_v out_o of_o use_n or_o else_o be_v take_v away_o by_o deceit_n something_n be_v add_v too_o very_o not_o many_o age_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o apostle_n there_o be_v see_v a_o far_a other_o hierarchy_n or_o government_n of_o the_o church_n than_o be_v from_o the_o beginning_n although_o those_o beginning_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o tolerable_a than_o at_o this_o day_n all_o of_o this_o same_o order_n be_v saint_n hierome_n say_v in_o time_n past_o church_n be_v govern_v with_o the_o common_a counsel_n and_o advise_v of_o the_o elder_n afterward_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o one_o of_o the_o elder_n be_v choose_v shall_v be_v set_v over_o the_o other_o unto_o who_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v pertain_v and_o that_o the_o seed_n of_o schism_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o thus_o much_o he_o in_o every_o city_n &_o country_n therefore_o he_o that_o be_v most_o excellent_a be_v place_v above_o the_o rest_n his_o office_n be_v to_o be_v superintendent_n and_o to_o have_v the_o oversight_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o whole_a flock_n he_o have_v not_o as_o we_o understand_v even_o now_o out_o of_o cyprian_n word_n dominion_n over_o his_o fellow_n in_o office_n or_o other_o elder_n but_o as_o the_o consul_n in_o the_o senate_n house_n be_v place_v to_o demand_v and_o gather_v together_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o senator_n and_o to_o defend_v the_o law_n &_o privilege_n and_o to_o be_v careful_a lest_o there_o shall_v arise_v faction_n among_o the_o senator_n even_o so_o no_o other_o be_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n in_o all_o other_o thing_n he_o be_v but_o equal_a with_o the_o other_o minister_n but_o have_v not_o the_o arrogancy_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o ambition_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v further_o increase_v we_o will_v not_o speak_v a_o word_n against_o they_o and_o s._n hierome_n affirm_v that_o that_o preferrment_v of_o bishop_n spring_v not_o by_o god_n ordinance_n but_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o man_n these_o thing_n have_v we_o remember_v say_v he_o to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v show_v that_o among_o the_o old_a father_n bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v all_o one_o but_o by_o little_a and_o little_a that_o the_o plant_n of_o dissension_n may_v be_v pluck_v up_o all_o the_o care_n be_v commit_v unto_o one_o therefore_o as_o minister_n know_v that_o they_o by_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n be_v subject_a to_o he_o which_o be_v set_v over_o they_o so_o let_v bishop_n know_v that_o rather_o by_o custom_n than_o by_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n disposition_n they_o be_v great_a than_o the_o other_o minister_n and_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n together_o in_o common_a follow_v the_o example_n of_o moses_n who_o when_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n alone_o to_o govern_v the_o people_n of_o israel_n choose_v out_o threescore_o and_o ten_o other_o with_o who_o he_o may_v judge_v the_o people_n thus_o he_o write_v in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 3._o cap._n of_o the_o epist._n of_o paul_n unto_o titus_n but_o the_o ancient_a father_n keep_v not_o themselves_o within_o these_o bound_n increase_v there_o be_v also_o ordain_v patriarch_n at_o antioch_n alexandria_n constantinople_n and_o rome_n there_o be_v appoint_v archbishop_n or_o metropolitan_n that_o be_v to_o ●aye_v such_o as_o have_v government_n over_o the_o bishop_n throughout_o province_n and_o to_o bishop_n of_o city_n or_o inferior_a bishop_n there_o be_v add_v such_o as_o be_v call_v chorepiscopi_fw-la or_o bishop_n of_o the_o multitude_n that_o be_v to_o say_v at_o such_o time_n as_o the_o country_n or_o region_n be_v large_a than_o that_o the_o care_n and_o oversight_n of_o the_o bishop_n place_v over_o the_o city_n will_v suffice_v for_o these_o be_v add_v as_o vicar_n and_o suffragan_n who_o may_v execute_v the_o office_n of_o the_o bishop_n throughout_o that_o part_n of_o the_o country_n but_o we_o know_v that_o the_o function_n of_o suffragan_n or_o vicar_n general_n in_o these_o last_o time_n be_v of_o a_o far_a other_o manner_n in_o bishop_n court_n and_o diocese_n and_o also_o under_o deacon_n be_v place_v subdeacons_n and_o when_o wealth_n increase_v there_o be_v archdeacon_n also_o create_v that_o be_v to_o say_v overseer_n of_o all_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n they_o as_z yet_o be_v not_o mingle_v with_o the_o order_n of_o minister_n or_o bishop_n and_o of_o those_o that_o teach_v but_o they_o remain_v as_o steward_n or_o factor_n of_o the_o good_n of_o the_o church_n as_o neither_o the_o monk_n at_o the_o beginning_n execute_v the_o office_n of_o a_o priest_n or_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n for_o they_o be_v count_v as_o laye-man_n not_o as_o clerk_n and_o be_v under_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o pastor_n but_o these_o unfortunate_a bird_n never_o leave_v soar_v until_o in_o these_o last_o time_n they_o have_v climb_v into_o the_o top_n of_o the_o temple_n and_o have_v set_v themselves_o upon_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n head_n for_o monk_n have_v be_v and_o be_v both_o pope_n archbishop_n &_o bishop_n and_o
and_o true_o the_o great_a or_o more_o famous_a &_o solemn_a church_n which_o at_o this_o day_n they_o call_v cathedral_n to_o wit_n of_o cathedra_fw-la a_o chair_n or_o of_o the_o order_n of_o prophet_n teach_v or_o profess_v there_o as_o some_o time_n the_o church_n of_o antioch_n corinth_n alexandria_n and_o such_o like_a seem_v to_o have_v be_v at_o certain_a hovere_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o morning_n at_o noon_n yea_o at_o evening_n also_o assemble_v to_o expound_v or_o discuss_v the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n the_o foundation_n of_o that_o observation_n seem_v to_o be_v lay_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o corinthian_n of_o which_o the_o apostle_n abundant_o witness_v 1._o corint_fw-la 14._o chapter_n eusebius_n in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o 9_o chapter_n make_v mention_n of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a school_n at_o alexandria_n say_v from_o a_o long_a time_n the_o doctrine_n and_o exercise_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n flourish_v among_o they_o which_o custom_n also_o continue_v even_o to_o our_o time_n which_o we_o have_v hear_v also_o to_o be_v institute_v by_o man_n mighty_a in_o eloquence_n and_o in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o wit_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o corinthian_a church_n some_o mark_n of_o this_o most_o wholesome_a rite_n or_o custom_n appear_v sometime_o in_o the_o occidental_a or_o west_n church_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o the_o write_n of_o saint_n ambrose_n and_o augustine_n but_o true_o in_o these_o very_a time_n and_o in_o the_o time_n immediate_o follow_v when_o all_o nation_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v together_o by_o the_o ear_n with_o perpetual_a war_n and_o when_o the_o roman_a empire_n in_o revengement_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n of_o his_o holy_a apostle_n and_o martyr_n according_a to_o the_o prophecy_n of_o daniel_n and_o saint_n john_n the_o apostle_n and_o evangelist_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n &_o make_v a_o prey_n for_o all_o people_n the_o goth_n or_o german_n rush_v upon_o they_o on_o this_o side_n the_o hun_n and_o other_o barbarous_a soldier_n on_o the_o other_o side_n assault_v rome_n sharp_o the_o best_a school_n be_v spoil_v goodly_a library_n be_v burn_v honest_a &_o good_a study_n perish_v whereupon_o be_v give_v unto_o the_o church_n doctor_n or_o teacher_n most_o unlike_a unto_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o teacher_n who_o be_v not_o furnish_v with_o that_o ability_n that_o they_o can_v deal_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n with_o such_o dexterity_n and_o fruitfulness_n as_o their_o predecessor_n in_o this_o disorder_n &_o downfall_n lest_o nothing_o shall_v remain_v of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n untouched_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o there_o rise_v up_o man_n not_o altogether_o negligent_a of_o the_o canonical_a doctrine_n who_o divide_v the_o whole_a canonical_a scripture_n after_o such_o a_o sort_n into_o part_n and_o for_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o year_n that_o they_o may_v once_o in_o a_o year_n read_v over_o the_o whole_a bible_n and_o the_o psalter_n often_o yea_o even_o every_o seven-night_n they_o use_v the_o psalm_n in_o steed_n of_o prayer_n to_o which_o as_o time_n increase_v many_o other_o prayer_n also_o be_v join_v and_o lest_o the_o very_a read_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v seem_v to_o want_v all_o exposition_n the_o read_n lecture_n or_o homily_n of_o the_o father_n be_v thereunto_o add_v at_o the_o length_n not_o that_o the_o priest_n shall_v read_v they_o secret_o to_o themselves_o as_o at_o this_o day_n in_o a_o manner_n they_o be_v wont_v to_o do_v or_o that_o they_o shall_v with_o a_o post-haste_a read_n mumble_v they_o up_o in_o steed_n of_o matin_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v thorough_o handle_v they_o in_o the_o open_a church_n as_o a_o exercise_n before_o the_o people_n to_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n that_o i_o may_v not_o now_o rehearse_v that_o this_o rite_n be_v not_o receive_v of_o all_o man_n so_o far_o off_o be_v it_o from_o be_v streict_o command_v of_o which_o thing_n there_o remain_v some_o token_n or_o proof_n in_o distinct_a 15._o sancta_fw-la rom._n furthermore_o of_o read_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n those_o hour_n wherein_o they_o be_v read_v seem_v to_o be_v name_v canonical_a as_o also_o canon_n be_v so_o call_v of_o study_v and_o read_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o at_o what_o time_n this_o be_v do_v and_o who_o be_v the_o doer_n thereof_o it_o be_v not_o certain_o know_v some_o do_v attribute_v some_o part_n hereof_o to_o hierome_n other_o some_o to_o damasus_n and_o some_o to_o pelagius_n the_o second_o of_o that_o name_n othersome_a also_o to_o gelasius_n and_o gregory_n and_o because_o homily_n and_o lecture_n not_o a_o few_o be_v say_v to_o be_v bedaes_n and_o other_o doctor_n of_o late_a time_n final_o for_o that_o many_o other_o thing_n be_v read_v in_o those_o hourly_a prayer_n which_o savour_n never_o a_o whit_n of_o antiquity_n true_o as_o it_o be_v a_o institution_n patch_v up_o diverse_o and_o at_o sundry_a time_n so_o be_v it_o far_o more_o new_a than_o the_o papist_n think_v or_o take_v it_o to_o be_v neither_o be_v there_o some_o want_v which_o affirm_v that_o at_o the_o request_n of_o carolus_n magnus_n paulus_n diaconus_fw-la or_o monk_n of_o cassina_n and_o monk_n isuarde_n ordain_v and_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n select_v or_o choose_v lesson_n those_o especial_o which_o concern_v the_o saint_n and_o be_v accustom_v to_o be_v read_v in_o these_o hour_n but_o howsoever_o the_o matter_n stand_v most_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o those_o hour_n at_o this_o day_n command_v and_o call_v canonical_a be_v the_o invention_n of_o man_n and_o not_o of_o god_n and_o ragged_a and_o rot_a relic_n or_o shadow_n of_o the_o old_a law_n whereunto_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v many_o fable_n toy_n &_o folly_n annex_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v true_o at_o this_o day_n there_o appear_v such_o a_o mingle_v mangle_v or_o hotchpotch_n that_o it_o seem_v utter_o unworthy_a either_o to_o be_v use_v or_o suffer_v any_o long_a in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n unless_o we_o have_v rather_o that_o care_n be_v take_v for_o the_o belly_n of_o some_o than_o for_o the_o good_a state_n and_o welfare_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o which_o thus_o much_o thus_o far_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o last_o place_n to_o discuss_v how_o we_o must_v pray_v what_o pray_v word_n or_o what_o form_n of_o prayer_n we_o must_v use_v true_o there_o be_v many_o form_n of_o prayer_n but_o none_o better_o than_o that_o which_o our_o lord_n the_o only_a belove_a son_n of_o god_n the_o father_n have_v deliver_v neither_o be_v there_o a_o more_o certain_a form_n as_o comprehend_v in_o few_o word_n all_o in_o all_o in_o this_o summary_n he_o have_v prescribe_v what_o be_v worthy_a of_o he_o what_o be_v acceptable_a to_o he_o what_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o and_o to_o be_v short_a what_o he_o be_v willing_a to_o grant_v whereupon_o s._n cyprian_n expound_v the_o lord_n prayer_n among_o other_o thing_n say_v he_o that_o make_v we_o to_o live_v the_o same_o have_v teach_v we_o also_o to_o pray_v even_o of_o the_o same_o his_o bountifulness_n whereby_o he_o have_v vouchsafe_v both_o to_o give_v and_o to_o bestow_v all_o other_o thing_n whatsoever_o that_o when_o we_o speak_v with_o the_o father_n in_o that_o prayer_n and_o supplicaton_n which_o the_o son_n have_v teach_v we_o we_o may_v be_v the_o more_o easy_o or_o ready_o hear_v and_o may_v true_o and_o spiritual_o worship_v he_o for_o what_o prayer_n can_v be_v more_o spiritual_a than_o that_o which_o be_v give_v unto_o we_o of_o christ_n from_o who_o also_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v send_v unto_o we_o what_o prayer_n before_o the_o father_n more_o true_a than_o that_o of_o the_o son_n proceed_v out_o of_o his_o mouth_n who_o be_v truth_n itself_o so_o that_o to_o pray_v otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v teach_v be_v not_o only_a ignorance_n but_o also_o offence_n since_o he_o himself_o have_v set_v down_o and_o say_v you_o cast_v aside_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n to_o establish_v your_o own_o tradition_n therefore_o dear_o belove_a brother_n let_v we_o pray_v as_o god_n our_o master_n have_v teach_v we_o it_o be_v a_o friendly_a and_o familiar_a prayer_n to_o call_v upon_o god_n in_o such_o manner_n as_o he_o have_v teach_v we_o and_o when_o that_o the_o prayer_n of_o christ_n come_v to_o his_o ear_n let_v the_o father_n acknowledge_v the_o word_n of_o his_o son_n when_o we_o pray_v he_o that_o dwell_v within_o the_o heart_n let_v he_o also_o be_v in_o the_o tongue_n and_o since_o we_o have_v he_o our_o advocate_n with_o the_o father_n for_o our_o sin_n when_o we_o be_v sinner_n ask_v pardon_n for_o our_o offence_n let_v we_o utter_v the_o word_n of_o
find_v that_o they_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v sacrament_n after_o one_o kind_n and_o they_o of_o the_o new_a testament_n sacrament_n after_o a_o other_o kind_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o people_n under_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v circumcision_n and_o the_o paschal_n lamb_n to_o which_o be_v add_v sacrifice_n whereof_o i_o have_v abundant_o speak_v in_o the_o third_o decade_n and_o the_o six_o sermon_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o people_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o christian_n by_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v two_o in_o number_n baptism_n &_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n but_o peter_n lombard_n reckon_v 7._o baptism_n penance_n the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n confirmation_n extreme_a unction_n order_n &_o matrimony_n he_o follow_v the_o whole_a rabblement_n of_o interpreter_n and_o rout_n of_o schoolman_n but_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v reckon_v up_o two_o principal_a sacrament_n among_o who_o tertullian_n in_o his_o first_o &_o four_o book_n contra_fw-la marcionem_fw-la and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la very_o plain_o make_v mention_v but_o of_o two_o only_a that_o be_v to_o say_v baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n or_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o augustine_n also_o lib._n 3._o the_o doctr_n christiana_n cap._n 9_o say_v the_o lord_n have_v not_o overburthen_v we_o with_o sign_n but_o the_o lord_n himself_o and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v unto_o we_o certain_a few_o thing_n in_o stead_n of_o many_o and_o those_o most_o easy_a to_o be_v do_v most_o reverend_a to_o be_v understand_v most_o pure_a to_o be_v observe_v as_o be_v baptism_n and_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o again_o to_o januarius_n epist._n 118._o he_o say_v he_o have_v knit_v and_o tie_v together_o the_o fellowship_n of_o a_o new_a people_n with_o sacrament_n in_o number_n very_o few_o in_o observe_v very_o easy_a in_o signification_n very_o excellent_a as_o be_v baptism_n consecrate_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o the_o partake_n of_o christ_n body_n and_o blood_n and_o whatsoever_o thing_n else_o be_v commend_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n except_o those_o thing_n wherewith_o the_o servitude_n of_o the_o old_a people_n be_v burden_v according_a to_o the_o agreeablnes_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o the_o time_n of_o the_o prophet_n which_o be_v read_v in_o the_o five_o book_n of_o moses_n where_o by_o the_o way_n be_v to_o be_v mark_v that_o he_o say_v not_o and_o whatsoever_o thing_n else_o be_v commend_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o and_o what_o so_o ever_o thing_n else_o etc_n etc_n which_o plain_o prove_v that_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o sacrament_n but_o of_o certain_a observation_n both_o use_v and_o receive_v of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o word_n of_o augustine_n which_o follow_v do_v declare_v howbeit_o i_o confess_v without_o dissimulation_n that_o the_o same_o augustine_n elsewhere_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o order_n where_o nevertheless_o this_o seem_v unto_o i_o to_o be_v also_o consider_v that_o the_o self_n same_o author_n give_v the_o name_n of_o sacrament_n to_o anoint_v and_o to_o prophecy_n and_o to_o prayer_n and_o to_o certain_a other_o of_o this_o sort_n as_o well_o as_o he_o do_v to_o order_n and_o now_o and_o then_o among_o they_o he_o reckon_v up_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o scripture_n so_o that_o we_o may_v easy_o see_v that_o in_o his_o work_n the_o word_n sacrament_n be_v now_o use_v one_o way_n and_o sometime_o a_o other_o for_o he_o call_v these_o sacrament_n because_o be_v holy_a they_o come_v from_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o because_o they_o be_v holy_a institution_n of_o god_n observe_v of_o all_o that_o be_v holy_a but_o yet_o so_o that_o these_o differ_v from_o those_o sacrament_n which_o be_v holy_a action_n consist_v of_o word_n and_o ceremony_n and_o which_o gather_v together_o into_o one_o fellowship_n the_o partaker_n thereof_o but_o rabanus_n maurus_n also_o bishop_n of_o mentze_n a_o diligent_a reader_n of_o augustin_n work_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la instit_fw-la cleric_a cap._n 24._o say_v baptism_n and_o unction_n and_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n be_v sacrament_n which_o for_o this_o reason_n be_v call_v sacrament_n because_o under_o a_o covert_n of_o corporal_a thing_n the_o power_n of_o god_o work_v more_o secret_o our_o salvation_n signify_v by_o those_o sacrament_n whereupon_o also_o for_o their_o secret_a and_o holy_a virtue_n they_o be_v call_v sacrament_n this_o rabanus_n maurus_n be_v famous_a about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n eight_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o so_o that_o even_o by_o this_o we_o may_v gather_v that_o the_o ancient_a apostolic_a church_n have_v no_o more_o than_o two_o sacrament_n i_o make_v no_o mention_n here_o of_o ambrose_n although_o he_o in_o his_o book_n of_o sacrament_n number_v not_o so_o many_o as_o the_o company_n of_o schoolman_n do_v because_o some_o of_o those_o work_v set_v forth_o in_o his_o name_n be_v not_o receive_v of_o all_o learned_a man_n as_o of_o his_o own_o do_v so_o i_o little_o force_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o work_n of_o dionysius_n which_o of_o what_o price_n and_o estimation_n they_o be_v among_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o declare_v but_o how_o so_o ever_o the_o case_n stand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o only_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o life_n and_o of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n commend_v baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n unto_o we_o as_o solemn_a institution_n and_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n those_o two_o be_v therefore_o sufficient_a for_o we_o so_o that_o we_o need_v not_o be_v move_v what_o so_o ever_o at_o any_o time_n the_o subtle_a invention_n of_o man_n busy_a brain_n bring_v against_o or_o beside_o these_o twain_o for_o why_o god_o never_o give_v power_n to_o any_o to_o institute_v sacrament_n in_o the_o mean_n while_n con●emned_v we_o do_v not_o contemn_v the_o wholesome_a rite_n and_o healthful_a institution_n of_o god_o nor_o yet_o the_o religious_a observation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n we_o have_v declare_v elsewhere_o touch_v penance_n and_o ecclesiastical_a order_n of_o the_o residue_n which_o latter_a writer_n do_v authorise_v for_o sacra_fw-la ▪_o mentes_fw-la we_o will_v speak_v in_o their_o convenient_a place_n so_o have_v we_o also_o elsewhere_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o we_o think_v requisite_a entreat_v of_o the_o likeness_n and_o difference_n of_o sacrament_n of_o the_o people_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n now_o let_v we_o see_v in_o what_o thing_n sacrament_n consist_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o all_o the_o godly_a man_n they_o consist_v in_o two_o thing_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v in_o the_o word_n and_o the_o rite_n in_o the_o promise_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o the_o ceremony_n in_o the_o outward_a thing_n and_o the_o inward_a in_o the_o earthly_a thing_n i_o say_v and_o the_o heavenly_a and_o as_o irenaeus_n the_o martyr_n of_o christ_n witness_v in_o the_o visible_a thing_n and_o invisible_a in_o the_o sensible_a thing_n and_o the_o intelligible_a 〈◊〉_d for_o hereunto_o belong_v that_o which_o saint_n john_n chrysostom_n upon_o matthew_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d christ_n deliver_v nothing_o unto_o we_o that_o be_v sensible_a but_o under_o visible_a thing_n the_o outward_a thing_n be_v sensible_a but_o yet_o all_o spiritual_a but_o he_o call_v those_o thing_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sensible_a which_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o outward_a sense_n as_o by_o see_v hear_v taste_v and_o touch_v but_o those_o thing_n he_o call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d intelligible_a or_o mental_a which_o be_v perceive_v by_o the_o mind_n the_o understanding_n consideration_n discourse_n or_o reason_n of_o the_o mind_n not_o of_o the_o flesh_n but_o of_o faith_n by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n this_o thing_n shall_v be_v make_v manifest_a .._o signify_v the_o lord_n say_v to_o his_o disciple_n in_o the_o gospel_n go_v into_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n and_o he_o which_o shall_v believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v you_o shall_v baptise_v in_o 1._o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o same_o say_v of_o john_n baptist_n john_n baptize_v in_o the_o wilderness_n preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n so_o also_o saint_n luke_n witness_v that_o saint_n peter_n say_v to_o the_o israelite_n repent_v you_o and_o be_v baptize_v every_o one_o of_o you_o in_o the_o
the_o christian_n church_n or_o congregation_n and_o afterward_o paul_n the_o apostle_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o they_o they_o be_v baptize_v not_o with_o water_n again_o but_o with_o fire_n luke_n bear_v witness_n and_o say_n the_o holy_a ghost_n come_v upon_o they_o and_o they_o speak_v with_o tongue_n and_o prophesy_v but_o this_o baptism_n of_o fire_n and_o the_o visible_a ministration_n of_o the_o gift_n cease_v together_o with_o miracle_n neither_o at_o this_o day_n be_v it_o usual_a or_o common_a in_o the_o church_n but_o the_o baptism_n of_o water_n remain_v which_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o whether_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o hand_n of_o john_n or_o of_o the_o apostle_n or_o by_o diverse_a hand_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n for_o diverse_a hand_n make_v not_o diverse_a baptism_n wherefore_o we_o right_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a and_o simple_a baptism_n of_o the_o faithful_a in_o all_o age_n for_o paul_n in_o express_a word_n say_v there_o be_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n and_o one_o god_n and_o 4._o father_n of_o all_o where-unto_a also_o tend_v this_o say_n of_o the_o same_o apostle_n i_o thank_v god_n that_o i_o baptize_v none_o of_o 1._o you_o but_o crispus_n and_o gaius_n lest_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o i_o have_v baptize_v in_o my_o own_o name_n upon_o this_o apostolic_a truth_n the_o reverend_a father_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantionople_n be_v read_v to_o have_v make_v this_o confession_n in_o their_o creed_n i_o believe_v one_o baptism_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n for_o there_o be_v but_o one_o church_n only_o one_o body_n one_o head_n and_o one_o king_n prince_n and_o high_a priest_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n now_o i_o be_o come_v to_o expound_v the_o rite_n or_o ceremony_n of_o baptism_n it_o baptism_n be_v simple_a and_o but_o one_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o not_o charegable_a or_o burdenous_a to_o the_o church_n through_o immoderate_a ceremony_n john_n baptize_v in_o aenon_n beside_o salem_n because_o much_o water_n be_v there_o and_o he_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n so_o do_v the_o 3._o apostle_n likewise_o whereby_o it_o remain_v for_o a_o undoubted_a truth_n that_o the_o very_o best_a form_n of_o baptise_v be_v that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o so_o the_o lord_n command_v in_o the_o 28._o of_o matthew_n do_v you_o ask_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o luke_n in_o the_o act_n make_v mention_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o express_v not_o that_o they_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o answer_v that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n be_v comprehend_v for_o when_o the_o lord_n say_v i_o and_o the_o father_n be_v one_o he_o which_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o lord_n be_v also_o baptise_a into_o the_o father_n and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n into_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v not_o divide_v from_o they_o for_o very_o they_o have_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n for_o true_o luke_n say_v that_o they_o be_v baptize_v of_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v according_a to_o the_o lord_n institution_n some_o say_v christ_n be_v the_o accomplishment_n or_o fulfil_n and_o the_o proper_a object_n of_o baptism_n wherefore_o it_o be_v no_o marvel_n that_o the_o apostle_n baptize_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n who_o nevertheless_o be_v command_v to_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o all_o the_o mystery_n of_o baptism_n be_v lay_v forth_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o only_a son_n of_o god_n true_o we_o say_v both_o to_o baptise_v into_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o to_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o use_n of_o speak_v after_o the_o first_o manner_n be_v read_v in_o the_o 28._o of_o matthew_n and_o in_o luke_n act_n the_o 19_o for_o both_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o nomen_fw-la into_o the_o name_n and_o so_o also_o tertullian_n interpret_v it_o contra_fw-la praxean_n say_v he_o command_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v baptize_v into_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n etc_n etc_n the_o latter_a manner_n do_v the_o same_o luke_n use_v in_o the_o act_n 10._o and_o 2._o say_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v in_o the_o name_n lord_n moreover_o what_o it_o be_v to_o baptise_v into_o the_o name_n or_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n i_o tell_v you_o in_o the_o last_o sermon_n next_o before_o this_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v enrol_v into_o god_n household_n that_o he_o which_o be_v baptize_v may_v now_o receive_v the_o name_n of_o god_o and_o be_v call_v the_o son_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o be_v as_o it_o be_v register_v into_o the_o roll_n of_o the_o child_n of_o god_n citizen_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n whereupon_o we_o have_v also_o namme_n give_v we_o in_o baptism_n that_o as_o often_o as_o we_o hear_v ourselves_o name_v we_o may_v remember_v our_o baptism_n and_o the_o mystery_n thereof_o neither_o be_v it_o a_o new_a thing_n or_o strange_a from_o the_o scripture_n that_o name_n be_v give_v we_o in_o baptism_n for_o so_o it_o be_v use_v also_o in_o circumcision_n which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o luke_n 2._o chapter_n furthermore_o the_o question_n be_v ask_v whether_o we_o ought_v to_o baptise_v with_o these_o bare_a word_n i_o baptise_v thou_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o add_v or_o join_v some_o thing_n else_o i_o think_v we_o ought_v to_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v the_o servant_n duty_n to_o add_v nothing_o to_o his_o lord_n institution_n but_o diligent_o to_o keep_v that_o which_o he_o have_v deliver_v yea_o &_o advise_o to_o mark_v what_o in_o baptism_n the_o lord_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n do_v &_o holy_o to_o imitate_v the_o same_o that_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o paul_n have_v command_v all_o 14._o thing_n may_v be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o good_a order_n but_o after_o that_o most_o holy_a form_n of_o baptise_v set_v down_o and_o deliver_v we_o see_v two_o thing_n in_o holy_a baptism_n and_o in_o the_o use_n thereof_o to_o be_v observe_v for_o first_o the_o apostle_n and_o they_o that_o be_v with_o the_o apostle_n do_v teach_v very_o significant_o of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_o and_o faith_n in_o christ_n which_o be_v apparent_a in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o in_o the_o action_n or_o ministration_n of_o baptism_n to_o recite_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n to_o rehearse_v the_o belief_n and_o require_v faith_n either_o of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v be_v of_o perfect_v age_n or_o else_o of_o they_o which_o bring_v the_o infant_n to_o be_v baptize_v moreover_o when_o the_o lord_n be_v baptize_v of_o john_n baptist_n in_o jordan_n he_o pray_v which_o thing_n luke_n in_o his_o gospel_n report_v of_o he_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o ●_o gospel_n it_o be_v lawful_a therefore_o in_o the_o use_n of_o baptism_n to_o pray_v and_o solemn_o to_o call_v upon_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n at_o the_o first_o these_o prayer_n be_v moderate_a and_o short_a not_o of_o a_o great_a length_n &_o tedious_a in_o process_n of_o time_n there_o be_v no_o measure_n keep_v not_o only_o in_o tedious_a blessing_n but_o also_o in_o diverse_a ceremony_n which_o they_o that_o come_v after_o add_v thereunto_o of_o the_o which_o it_o shall_v not_o seem_v altogether_o unprofitable_a to_o rehearse_v somewhat_o out_o of_o the_o old_a doctor_n tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_n militis_fw-la say_v when_o we_o go_v to_o the_o font_n baptism_n there_o and_o also_o a_o little_a before_o in_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n lay_v his_o hand_n on_o we_o we_o do_v confess_v that_o we_o forsake_v the_o devil_n his_o pomp_n and_o all_o his_o angel_n then_o be_v we_o thrice_o dip_v in_o the_o water_n not_o some_o leave_n out_o not_o answer_v any_o thing_n more_o than_o the_o lord_n have_v set_v down_o in_o the_o gospel_n when_o we_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o fonte_fw-la we_o taste_v of_o milk_n and_o honey_n mingle_v together_o and_o from_o that_o time_n we_o abstain_v from_o daily_o wash_v by_o the_o space_n of_o a_o whole_a week_n we_o hear_v in_o this_o a_o utter_a deny_v or_o renounce_v a_o third_o dip_v a_o
deed_n be_v holy_a not_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o word_n rehearse_v or_o by_o cross_n and_o other_o sign_n make_v but_o because_o god_n have_v institute_v it_o and_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o holy_a use_n and_o prayer_n of_o the_o godly_a of_o which_o matter_n i_o speak_v not_o long_o ago_o when_o i_o entreat_v of_o the_o sanctification_n or_o consecration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o christ_n command_v his_o w●●er_o disciple_n to_o baptise_v with_o water_n for_o diverse_a cause_n for_o type_n or_o figure_n go_v before_o baptism_n in_o water_n as_o the_o ●loud_n as_o the_o red_a sea_n through_o which_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n pass_v as_o diverse_a cleansinge_n and_o set_v wash_n mention_v in_o the_o law_n neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n dissemble_v those_o thing_n for_o peter_n say_v that_o no_n be_v save_v in_o the_o water_n of_o 3._o the_o flood_n but_o the_o wicked_a drown_v in_o the_o water_n paul_n affirm_v that_o all_o our_o father_n be_v baptize_v by_o moses_n in_o the_o cloud_n and_o in_o the_o sea._n therefore_o mortification_n and_o vivification_n be_v prefigure_v 10._o and_o true_o the_o principal_a badge_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v baptism_n witness_v that_o full_a remission_n of_o sin_n be_v bring_v unto_o we_o by_o christ_n and_o the_o holy_a prophet_n of_o god_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o lord_n foreshewinge_v and_o promise_v this_o have_v willing_o shadow_v out_o this_o inestimable_a benefit_n by_o water_n therefore_o baptism_n must_v be_v minister_v in_o water_n this_o also_o serve_v notable_o to_o represent_v the_o mystery_n of_o which_o matter_n i_o have_v speak_v in_o my_o last_o sermon_n when_o i_o entreat_v of_o the_o analogy_n or_o likeness_n of_o sign_n and_o for_o these_o cause_n chief_o baptism_n ought_v to_o be_v minister_v in_o this_o and_o not_o in_o any_o other_o element_n there_o be_v contention_n also_o about_o water_n this_o whether_o once_o or_o thrice_o he_o that_o be_v baptize_v ought_v to_o be_v dip_v or_o sprinkle_v with_o water_n true_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o curious_o command_v any_o thing_n in_o this_o behalf_n so_o that_o it_o be_v free_a either_o to_o sprinkle_v or_o to_o dip_v sprincklinge_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v use_v of_o the_o old_a father_n for_o honesty_n and_o shamefastness_n forbid_v to_o uncover_v the_o body_n and_o also_o the_o weak_a state_n of_o infant_n for_o the_o most_o part_n can_v away_o with_o dip_v since_o sprinkle_v also_o do_v as_o much_o as_o dip_v and_o it_o stand_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o he_o that_o minster_v baptism_n to_o sprinkle_v he_o either_o once_o or_o thrice_o after_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v minister_v tertullian_n contra_fw-la praxeam_fw-la say_v the_o lord_n command_v to_o baptise_v into_o the_o father_n and_o into_o the_o son_n and_o into_o the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o into_o one_o for_o we_o be_v baptize_v not_o once_o but_o thrice_o at_o each_o name_n into_o each_o person_n and_o gregory_n answer_v leonarde_n the_o bishop_n say_v a_o diverse_a custom_n hinder_v nothing_o the_o holy_a church_n so_o that_o it_o be_v do_v in_o one_o faith_n we_o by_o thrice_o dip_v do_v signify_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n lie_v in_o the_o grave_n three_o day_n again_o the_o reverend_a father_n in_o the_o four_o counsel_n hold_v at_o toledo_n do_v allow_v but_o one_o dip_v in_o baptism_n and_o then_o add_v immediate_o this_o reason_n and_o lest_o any_o shall_v doubt_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o this_o sacrament_n why_o we_o allow_v but_o one_o dip_v he_o may_v see_v therein_o our_o death_n and_o resurrection_n for_o the_o dip_v into_o the_o water_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o go_v down_o into_o the_o grave_n and_o the_o come_n up_o again_o out_o of_o the_o water_n be_v the_o rise_n again_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n also_o he_o may_v perceive_v that_o therein_o be_v show_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o godhead_n and_o the_o trinity_n of_o the_o person_n the_o unity_n be_v figure_v when_o we_o dipp_v once_o the_o trinity_n when_o we_o baptise_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n this_o i_o do_v not_o allege_v to_o stay_v myself_o upon_o man_n testimony_n but_o by_o man_n testimony_n to_o show_v that_o it_o be_v free_a to_o follow_v that_o which_o serve_v most_o to_o the_o edify_n of_o the_o church_n also_o there_o be_v a_o question_n move_v touch_v the_o place_n of_o baptism_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o baptise_v in_o any_o baptism_n other_o place_n than_o in_o the_o church_n i_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v consecrate_v to_o ministery_n and_o to_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o that_o comeliness_n itself_o require_v to_o baptise_v open_o in_o the_o church_n but_o if_o necessity_n will_v not_o permit_v this_o the_o baptism_n of_o christ_n be_v tie_v to_o no_o place_n for_o we_o hear_v that_o philipp_n baptize_v out_o of_o the_o fountain_n in_o the_o broad_a field_n yet_o let_v we_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o make_v not_o necessity_n a_o pretence_n for_o our_o lewd_a affection_n but_o let_v all_o thing_n in_o the_o church_n be_v clean_o which_o pertain_v unto_o baptism_n let_v all_o superfluity_n be_v lay_v aside_o let_v all_o filth_n and_o uncleanness_n be_v banish_v let_v all_o thing_n as_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v do_v honest_o and_o in_o order_n touch_v the_o time_n there_o be_v no_o law_n prescribe_v of_o the_o lord_n that_o be_v baptism_n leave_v free_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o godly_a they_o that_o believe_v the_o preach_n of_o s._n peter_n at_o jerusalem_n in_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n the_o eunuch_n also_o who_o philip_n baptize_v &_o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n likewise_o final_o paul_n the_o apostle_n at_o damascus_n yea_o and_o lydia_n the_o purple-seller_n a_o religious_a or_o devout_a woman_n and_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n they_o of_o philippos_n also_o and_o other_o faithful_a man_n and_o woman_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o have_v taste_v of_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o christ_n and_o believe_v his_o word_n forthwith_o they_o dersire_v to_o be_v baptize_v they_o do_v not_o foade_o it_o off_o till_o another_o next_o time_n wherefore_o they_o do_v very_o well_o which_o neither_o in_o themselves_o neither_o in_o their_o family_n do_v linger_v in_o receive_v baptism_n the_o delay_n of_o circumcision_n in_o his_o child_n fall_v not_o out_o well_o unto_o moses_n as_o therefore_o we_o grant_v that_o the_o time_n of_o baptism_n be_v free_a so_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o duty_n to_o take_v heed_n that_o we_o abuse_v not_o our_o liberty_n be_v always_o mindful_a of_o these_o word_n speak_v by_o god_n the_o uncircumcised_a manchild_n in_o who_o flesh_n the_o foreskin_n be_v not_o circumcise_v that_o soul_n shall_v be_v cut_v 17._o off_o from_o his_o people_n because_o he_o have_v break_v my_o covenant_n but_o we_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o baptism_n come_v into_o the_o place_n of_o circumcision_n therefore_o the_o omit_v of_o baptism_n be_v not_o free_a there_o be_v some_o in_o the_o time_n of_o cyprian_a which_o hold_v opinion_n that_o baptism_n ought_v to_o be_v receive_v on_o the_o eight_o day_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o circumcision_n but_o cyprian_a and_o the_o 66._o bishop_n and_o elder_n that_o be_v with_o he_o in_o the_o counsel_n ordain_v the_o contrary_a to_o wit_n that_o every_o one_o without_o any_o delay_n shall_v receive_v baptism_n and_o procure_v the_o same_o speedy_o in_o their_o family_n that_o place_n be_v extant_a epist._n li._n 3._o epist._n 8._o furthermore_o socrates_n the_o historiographer_n lib._n 5._o ca._n 22._o say_v i_o know_v also_o another_o custom_n in_o thessaly_n according_a to_o the_o which_o they_o baptise_v only_o on_o the_o day_n of_o easter_n whereby_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o save_v a_o very_a small_a number_n they_o die_v unbaptized_a but_o after_o a_o certain_a time_n there_o be_v a_o law_n make_v that_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a shall_v not_o be_v baptize_v but_o at_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n they_o except_v the_o time_n of_o necessity_n we_o may_v read_v this_o in_o decret_n syricij_fw-la pont._n in_o isidore_n &_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n leo_n unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o campania_n and_o sicylia_n which_o in_o order_n be_v reckon_v to_o be_v 57_o and_o 62._o but_o the_o thing_n that_o move_v they_o hereunto_o be_v such_o as_o may_v be_v easy_o disprove_v and_o overthrow_v true_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o time_n of_o baptism_n be_v not_o so_o limit_v nevertheless_o that_o law_n of_o baptise_v the_o faithful_a at_o the_o feast_n of_o easter_n &_o pentecost_n be_v renew_a by_o pipine_n charles_n lodovick_a &_o lothar_n french_a king_n and_o be_v spread_v far_o as_o their_o dominion_n
himself_o peccatum_fw-la voluntarium_fw-la &_o involuntarium_fw-la see_v augstine_n demenda●●_n ad_fw-la conse●tium_fw-la cap_n 9_o &_o 10._o ●●_o 〈◊〉_d man_n 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈…〉_o to_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o best_a 〈◊〉_d man_n 〈◊〉_d hasten_v 〈…〉_o sin_n hidden_a and_o 〈◊〉_d sin_n mortal_a and_o venial_a ●hether_o 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈…〉_o in_o 〈◊〉_d after_o 〈…〉_o sin_n 〈…〉_o whether_o the_o virtuous_a work_n of_o the_o heathen_a be_v sin_n or_o no_o whether_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v sin_n or_o no_o of_o the_o sin_n ●gainst_a the_o ●oly_a ghost_n what_o blasphemy_n be_v proper_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n blasphe●●●_n against_o 〈◊〉_d son_n of_o man._n the_o 〈◊〉_d ●gainst_a 〈◊〉_d holy_a 〈◊〉_d sin_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n 〈◊〉_d not_o remit_v or_o endler_n unrepentance_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d &_o certain_a punishment_n of_o sinner_n the_o place_n of_o 〈◊〉_d the_o lord_n do_v punish_v sinner_n just_o ▪_o god_n punish_v most_o sure_o example_n of_o go●_n just_o 〈…〉_o ●ods_n long_a 〈◊〉_d why_o sin●_n a●_z plague_v with_o temporal_a punishment_n consider_v that_o they_o be_v forgive_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god._n absolve_v defile_v 〈◊〉_d father_n bed_n 〈◊〉_d by_o he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o 〈◊〉_d be_v humble_v how_o wicked_a punish●●_n euangelium_fw-la the_o gospel_n esai_n 61._o luke_n ●_o ●he_z gos●●ll_n what_o 〈◊〉_d the_o definition_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o gospel_n be_v tiding_n from_o heaven_n the_o gos●ell_n be_v the_o ●orde_n of_o ●●d_z although_o it_o 〈◊〉_d utter_v ●y_a the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o ●en_z the_o ●●sp●ll_o 〈…〉_o the_o word_n ●race_n 〈…〉_o be_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o god●_n grace_n the_o cause_n of_o the_o gospel_n the_o work_n of_o god_n grace_n the_o co●trovers●●_n betwixt_o augusti●●_n and_o pela●●us_n touch_v the_o grace_n of_o god._n 1._o grati●_n gratum_fw-la ciens_fw-la 2._o grat●●_n gratis_o 〈◊〉_d 3._o grat●●_n opera●●_n gratia_fw-la opera●●_n 4._o gra●●●_n praeve●●ens_v &_o tia_fw-la 〈◊〉_d quent_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d by_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o the_o promise_n touch_v christ_n our_o saviour_n the_o first_o evangely_n gospel_n or_o preach_v of_o glad_a tiding_n gen._n 3._o 1._o pet._n 1._o deus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d &_o essent●●lis_n 〈◊〉_d 9_o 〈…〉_o not_o 〈◊〉_d god_n the_o father_n have_v through_o christ_n perform_v to_o we_o that_o which_o he_o promise_v to_o our_o forefather_n jesus_n be_v christ_n th●●_n be_v that_o look_v for_o messia●_n the_o jew_n 〈◊〉_d that_o ●hrist_n be_v 〈◊〉_d or_o 〈◊〉_d jesus_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n god_n the_o 〈…〉_o the_o world_n be_v please_v with_o it_o in_o the_o son_n 〈◊〉_d thing_n 〈◊〉_d to_o 〈…〉_o be_v 〈◊〉_d give_v 〈◊〉_d christ_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n alone_o be_v our_o life_n and_o salvation_n 〈…〉_o full_o 〈…〉_o the_o unsincere_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n salvation_n preach_v in_o the_o gospel_n do_v belong_v to_o all_o ●●erfore_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d save_v the_o faithful_a be_v save_v the_o gospel_n teach_v faith_n and_o repentance_n how_o 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈…〉_o &_o 〈◊〉_d by_o 〈◊〉_d how_o christ_n do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n of_o regeneration_n more_o large_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o sermon_n of_o repentance_n john_n 3._o 〈◊〉_d paul_n 〈…〉_o gospel_n the_o man●er_n and_o order_n of_o our_o sanctification_n purification_n &_o justification_n 〈◊〉_d they_o 〈◊〉_d that_o 〈◊〉_d have_v seem_v error_n refute_v 〈◊〉_d a●raham_n ●e_z father_n 〈◊〉_d the_o faith_n 〈◊〉_d be_v iusti●●●d_v the_o righteousness_n of_o christian_n be_v imputative_a 〈…〉_o of_o 〈…〉_o why_o 〈◊〉_d doctri●●●●aith_v that_o justify_v without_o work_n be_v to_o be_v ke●●_n uncorrupted_a in_o the_o church_n 〈◊〉_d christ_n see_v the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d act_n 〈◊〉_d the_o apostle_n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d sermon_n the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o conclusion_n &_o sum_n of_o all_o to_o repent_v 〈…〉_o of_o 〈◊〉_d word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o it_o be_v what_o repentance_n be_v conversion_n to_o god._n the_o doctrine_n of_o verity_n be_v needful_a to_o repentance_n 〈◊〉_d fear_n 〈◊〉_d god_n to_o 〈…〉_o our_o humble_v and_o acknowledge_v of_o our_o sin_n the_o fear_n of_o god_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n sorrow_n to_o god_n ward_n 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d that_o 〈◊〉_d sin_n be_v full_o and_o sure_o forgive_v unto_o penitent_n 1._o pet._n 2._o against_o the_o novatian_n and_o anabaptistes_n 〈…〉_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o sin_n confession_n of_o sin_n ordain_v of_o god._n ●he_z con●●ssion_n 〈◊〉_d be_v 〈…〉_o to_o ●od_a public_a or_o open_a confession_n levit._n 10._o act_n 1_o ▪_o confe●●_n that_o be_v make_v t●_n our_o 〈◊〉_d consultation_n confession_n of_o sin_n ordain_v of_o man_n exhomologesis_n i_o find_v he_o otherwise_o call_v natalius_n luke_n 9_o joha_n 8._o 8._o a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o of_o auricular_a confession_n 〈…〉_o be_v 〈◊〉_d com●●●ded_v 〈…〉_o auricular_a confession_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o 〈◊〉_d place_n in_o all_o the_o scripture_n 〈…〉_o whe●_z aurient_a confe●●_n be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d keep_v 〈◊〉_d chur●●_n 〈◊〉_d solut●●_n sake●_n of_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o work_n note_v here_o the_o difference_n that_o they_o make_v betwixt_o paena_fw-la and_o culpa_fw-la peccati_fw-la ●od_a afflic●●●_n they_o ●hose_v 〈◊〉_d he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d many_o sin_n be_v forgive_v she_o because_o she_o ●oved_v much_o of_o indulgency_n 〈…〉_o the_o filthy_a mart_n of_o indulgence_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o of_o the_o power_n of_o man._n understanding_n will._n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d man_n 〈◊〉_d of_o regeneration_n what_o and_o of_o what_o kind_n the_o liberty_n be_v that_o be_v in_o man._n 〈◊〉_d the_o 〈◊〉_d man_n 〈…〉_o by_o 〈◊〉_d spirit_n of_o the_o worthy_a fruit_n or_o of_o the_o fruit_n worthy_a of_o repentance_n 〈…〉_o of_o all_o 〈◊〉_d what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a in_o penitentes_fw-la the_o outward_a exercise_n of_o repentance_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o false_a and_o true_a repentance_n true_a penitentes_fw-la be_v in_o a_o happy_a ca●e_n vnrepentantes_fw-la be_v unhappy_a 〈◊〉_d not_o 〈…〉_o no_o repentance_n come_v too_o late_o math._n ●_o whether_o they_o that_o mind_n to_o reform_v the_o church_n must_v state_n to_o look_v for_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o coun●●●●_n jeremy_n 8._o luke_n 9_o what_o counsel_n have_v be_v in_o these_o latter_a age●_n celebrate_v what_o christian_n at_o this_o day_n may_v look_v for_o by_o general_a counsel_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o enerie_z christian_n church_n to_o reform_v thing_n out_o of_o order_n holy_a king_n josias_n faith_n can_v be_v reform_v but_o b●_z th●_z word_n of_o god._n rom._n 10._o 2._o cor._n 2_o the_o scripture_n do_v sufficient_o minister_v a_o full_a platform_n how_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n sundry_a opinion_n concern_v god._n ●_o john_n 12_o whereupon_o the_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n concern_v god_n do_v rise_v and_o from_o whence_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o he_o must_v be_v fetch_a ●hat_n 〈◊〉_d be_v a_o god_n psalm_n ●_o a_o 〈◊〉_d be_v to_o 〈◊〉_d keep_v 〈…〉_o and_o 〈…〉_o god_n 〈◊〉_d pro._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 19_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o the_o formed_n and_o m●●ners_n o●_n know_v god._n exod_n ▪_o john_n 3._o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d apoc._n 1_n cabala_n be_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o jew_n leave_v to_o they_o by_o moses_n not_o in_o writing_n but_o from_o the_o father_n to_o the_o son_n wherein_o be_v contain_v as_o well_o the_o secret_n of_o nature_n as_o the_o mystical_a sense_n include_v in_o the_o word_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n jah_n and_o hu._n hu_o signify_v he_o or_o this_o adonai_n the_o lo●●_n of_o sabbath_n or_o o●_n host_n daniel_n 〈◊〉_d high_a 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o act_n 17._o deus_fw-la 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d elohim_n this_o dii_n importech_n as_o much_o as_o if_o one_o shall_v say_v gods._n schaddai_n gene._n 17_o satur●●●_n it_o seem_v that_o we_o english_a man_n do_v borrow_v of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d mane_n their_o 〈◊〉_d gott_n 〈◊〉_d turn_v their_o 〈◊〉_d t_o 〈◊〉_d d_o 〈◊〉_d we_o so●●_n god_n 〈◊〉_d we_o sho●●_n say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 4._o 〈…〉_o 〈◊〉_d god_n 〈…〉_o trinity_n dionysius_n of_o the_o name_n of_o god._n vision_n &_o prosopographie_n of_o god._n prosopographie_n be_v a_o picture_v or_o reprseentinge_v of_o bodily_a lineament_n prosopopeie_n be_v where_o those_o be_v bring_v in_o to_o speak_v that_o do_v not_o speak_v anthropomorphites_n how_o 〈…〉_o tribute●_n god_n 〈◊〉_d i●_z bodiless_a p●●lm_n 94._o these_o ●ordes_n of_o 〈…〉_o take_v 〈◊〉_d of_o ●●●tullian_n how_o the_o patriarch_n 〈◊〉_d see_v god._n john_n 1._o 1._o tim._n ●_o exod._n 33_o god_n 〈◊〉_d do_v 〈◊〉_d thing_n 〈◊〉_d with_o 〈◊〉_d father_n his_o so●●_n 〈…〉_o 〈…〉_o god_n give_v his_o gift_n free_o without_o respect_n of_o man_n merit_n how_o go●_n do_v show_v himself_o to_o mose●_n 〈…〉_o god_n do_v most_o evident_o open_v himself_o through_o christ_n 2._o cor._n 4._o hebr._n 1._o john_n 6._o math._n 11._o john_n 14._o john_n 1._o 1._o cor._n 1._o rom._n 1._o god_n wisdom_n appear_v god_n goodness_n appeare●●●_n god●_n
the_o father_n from_o whence_o it_o shall_v come_v to_o judge_v the_o quick_a and_o the_o dead_a and_o let_v we_o think_v that_o the_o lord_n speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n will_v have_v we_o to_o expound_v the_o word_n of_o the_o sacrament_n sacramental_o and_o not_o transubstancial_o also_o in_o read_v that_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n let_v we_o not_o by_o and_o by_o upon_o these_o word_n take_v it_o simple_o as_o the_o word_n do_v seem_v to_o signify_v but_o stick_v to_o the_o article_n of_o our_o say_v i_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n let_v we_o understand_v that_o by_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v mean_v the_o affection_n &_o infirmity_n not_o the_o nature_n &_o substance_n of_o our_o body_n furthermore_o we_o read_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o lord_n do_v gather_v a_o sum_n neighbour_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n say_v thou_o shall_v love_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n with_o all_o thy_o heart_n with_o all_o thy_o soul_n and_o with_o all_o thy_o mind_n this_o be_v the_o chief_a and_o great_a commandment_n and_o the_o second_o be_v like_a unto_o it_o thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o in_o these_o two_o commandment_n hang_v the_o whole_a law_n and_o the_o prophet_n math._n 22._o upon_o these_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n that_o holy_a man_n aurelius_n augustinus_n in_o the._n 36._o chapter_n of_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr doctrina_fw-la christi_fw-la say_v â–ª_o whosoever_o do_v seem_v to_o himself_o to_o understand_v the_o holy_a scripture_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o so_o that_o that_o understanding_n he_o do_v not_o work_v these_o two_o point_n of_o charity_n towards_o god_n &_o his_o neighbour_n he_o yet_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o scripture_n perfect_o but_o whosoever_o shall_v take_v out_o of_o they_o such_o a_o opinion_n as_o be_v profitable_a to_o the_o work_n of_o this_o charity_n and_o yet_o shall_v not_o say_v the_o self_n samethig_n which_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o he_o do_v mean_v who_o he_o read_v in_o that_o place_n that_o man_n do_v not_o err_v to_o his_o own_o destruction_n nor_o do_v altogether_o by_o lie_v deceive_v other_o man_n thus_o much_o write_v augustin_n we_o must_v therefore_o by_o all_o mean_v possible_a take_v heed_n that_o our_o interpretation_n do_v not_o tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o charity_n but_o to_o the_o furtherance_n and_o commendation_n of_o it_o to_o all_o man_n the_o lord_n say_v strive_v not_o with_o the_o wicked_a but_o if_o we_o affirm_v that_o he_o speak_v this_o to_o the_o magistrate_n also_o they_o shall_v charity_n towards_o our_o neighbour_n the_o safety_n of_o they_o that_o be_v in_o jeopardy_n &_o defence_n of_o the_o oppress_a be_v break_v and_o clean_o take_v away_o for_o thief_n &_o unruly_a person_n robber_n and_o naughty_a fellow_n will_v oppress_v the_o widow_n the_o fatherless_a and_o the_o poor_a to_o that_o all_o iniquity_n shall_v reign_v and_o have_v the_o upper_a hand_n but_o in_o a_o matter_n so_o manifest_o know_v i_o suppose_v it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o use_v many_o example_n moreover_o it_o be_v requisite_a in_o expound_v circumstance_n the_o scripture_n and_o search_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n that_o we_o mark_v upon_o what_o occasion_n every_o thing_n be_v speak_v what_o go_v before_o what_o follow_v after_o at_o what_o season_n in_o what_o order_n and_o of_o what_o person_n any_o thing_n be_v speak_v by_o the_o occasion_n and_o the_o sentence_n go_v before_o and_o come_v after_o be_v example_n and_o parable_n for_o the_o most_o part_n expound_v also_o unless_o a_o man_n do_v always_o mark_v the_o manner_n of_o speak_v throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n and_o that_o very_o diligent_o too_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v in_o his_o exposition_n but_o err_v very_o much_o out_o of_o the_o right_a way_n saint_n paul_n observe_v the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o time_n do_v thereby_o conclude_v that_o abraham_n be_v justify_v neither_o by_o circumcision_n nor_o yet_o by_o the_o law_n the_o place_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o four_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o the_o third_o to_o the_o galatian_n again_o when_o it_o be_v say_v to_o peter_n put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o sheath_n he_o that_o take_v the_o sword_n shall_v perish_v with_o the_o sword_n we_o must_v consider_v that_o peter_n bear_v the_o personage_n of_o a_o apostle_n and_o not_o of_o a_o magistrate_n for_o of_o the_o magistrate_n we_o read_v that_o to_o he_o be_v give_v the_o sword_n to_o revengement_n but_o it_o will_v be_v over_o tedious_a and_o too_o troublesome_a to_o rehearse_v more_o example_n of_o every_o particular_a place_n place_n there_o be_v also_o beside_o these_o another_o manner_n of_o interpret_n the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v by_o confer_v together_o the_o place_n which_o be_v like_a or_o unlike_a and_o by_o expound_v the_o dark_a by_o the_o more_o evident_a and_o the_o few_o by_o the_o more_o in_o number_n whereas_o therefore_o the_o lord_n say_v the_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o same_o lord_n in_o another_o place_n say_v my_o father_n and_o i_o be_v all_o one_o and_o whereas_o james_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o abraham_n and_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n there_o be_v many_o place_n in_o saint_n paul_n to_o be_v set_v against_o that_o one_o and_o this_o manner_n of_o interpret_n do_v peter_n the_o apostle_n allow_v where_o he_o say_v we_o 1._o have_v a_o right_n sure_a word_n of_o prophecy_n whereunto_o if_o you_o attend_v as_o unto_o a_o light_n that_o shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n you_o do_v well_o until_o the_o day_n dawn_n and_o the_o day_n star_n arise_v in_o your_o heart_n that_o ancient_a writer_n tertullian_n affirm_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n and_o not_o man_n of_o the_o right_a faith_n which_o draw_v some_o odd_a thing_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n to_o their_o own_o purpose_n not_o have_v any_o respect_n to_o the_o rest_n but_o do_v by_o that_o mean_n pick_v out_o unto_o themselves_o a_o certain_a few_o testimony_n which_o they_o will_v have_v altogether_o to_o be_v believe_v the_o whole_a scripture_n in_o the_o mean_a season_n gainsay_v it_o because_o in_o deed_n the_o few_o place_n must_v be_v understand_v according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o more_o in_o number_n and_o final_o the_o most_o effectual_a rule_n of_o all_o whereby_o to_o expound_v the_o prayer_n word_n of_o god_n be_v a_o heart_n that_o love_v god_n and_o his_o glory_n not_o puff_v up_o with_o pride_n not_o desirous_a of_o vain_a glory_n not_o corrupt_v with_o heresy_n and_o evil_a affection_n but_o which_o do_v continual_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o his_o holy_a spirit_n that_o as_o by_o it_o the_o scripture_n be_v reveal_v and_o inspire_v so_o also_o by_o the_o same_o spirit_n it_o may_v be_v expound_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o safeguard_n of_o the_o faithful_a let_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o interpreter_n be_v set_v on_o fire_n with_o zeal_n to_o advance_v virtue_n and_o with_o hatred_n of_o wickedness_n even_o to_o the_o suppress_n thereof_o let_v not_o the_o heart_n of_o such_o a_o expositor_n call_v to_o counsel_v that_o subtle_a sophister_n the_o devil_n lest_o peradventure_o now_o also_o he_o do_v corrupt_v the_o sense_n of_o god_n word_n as_o heretofore_o he_o do_v in_o paradise_n let_v he_o not_o abide_v to_o hear_v man_n wisdom_n argue_v direct_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o if_o the_o good_a and_o faithful_a expositor_n of_o god_n word_n shall_v do_v then_o although_o in_o some_o point_n he_o do_v not_o as_o the_o proverb_n say_v hit_v the_o very_a head_n of_o the_o nail_n in_o the_o dark_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o error_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heresy_n in_o the_o author_n nor_o judge_v hurtful_a unto_o the_o hearer_n and_o who_o so_o ever_o shall_v bring_v the_o darker_n &_o more_o proper_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o light_v he_o shall_v not_o by_o and_o by_o condemn_v the_o unperfect_a exposition_n of_o that_o other_o no_o more_o than_o he_o which_o be_v author_n of_o the_o unperfect_a exposition_n shall_v reject_v the_o more_o proper_a sense_n of_o the_o better_a expositor_n but_o by_o acknowledge_v it_o shall_v receive_v it_o with_o thanks_n give_v thus_o much_o hitherto_o have_v i_o say_v touch_v the_o sense_n and_o exposition_n of_o god_n word_n which_o as_o god_n reveal_v it_o to_o man_n so_o also_o he_o will_v have_v they_o in_o any_o case_n to_o understand_v it_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n for_o any_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o few_o difficulty_n to_o despair_v to_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n the_o scripture_n
save_v last_o of_o all_o that_o that_o shall_v most_o assure_o light_a upon_o the_o ungodly_a and_o the_o godly_a what_o so_o ever_o the_o holy_a scripture_n do_v either_o threaten_v or_o promise_v out_o of_o all_o these_o definition_n therefore_o faith_n be_v diligent_o consider_v we_o may_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n make_v this_o description_n of_o faith_n faith_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o god_n pour_v into_o man_n from_o heaven_n whereby_o he_o be_v teach_v with_o a_o undoubted_a persuasion_n whole_o to_o lean_v to_o god_n and_o his_o word_n â–ª_o in_o which_o word_n god_n do_v free_o promise_v life_n and_o all_o good_a thing_n in_o christ_n and_o wherein_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v plain_o declare_v which_o description_n of_o faith_n i_o will_v by_o god_n help_n in_o this_o that_o follow_v unfold_v into_o part_n and_o by_o assertion_n of_o place_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n will_v both_o confirm_v and_o make_v manifest_a unto_o you_o you_o as_o hitherto_o you_o have_v do_v so_o still_o give_v diligent_a care_n and_o in_o your_o heart_n pray_v earnest_o to_o god._n first_o of_o all_o the_o cause_n or_o beginning_n faith_n of_o faith_n come_v not_o of_o any_o man_n or_o any_o strength_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n himself_o who_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n inspire_v faith_n into_o our_o heart_n for_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n say_v no_o man_n come_v to_o i_o unless_o my_o father_n draw_v he_o and_o again_o flesh_n and_o blood_n say_v the_o lord_n to_o peter_n confess_v christ_n in_o true_a faith_n have_v not_o reveal_v this_o to_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n whereunto_o the_o apostle_n paul_n allude_v when_o he_o say_v we_o be_v not_o able_a of_o ourselves_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n as_o of_o ourselves_o but_o all_o our_o ability_n be_v of_o god._n and_o in_o another_o place_n to_o you_o it_o be_v give_v for_o christ_n not_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o but_o also_o to_o suffer_v for_o his_o sake_n faith_n therefore_o be_v pour_v into_o our_o heart_n by_o god_n who_o be_v the_o wellspring_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o goodness_n and_o yet_o we_o have_v to_o consider_v here_o god._n that_o god_n in_o give_v and_o inspire_v faith_n do_v not_o use_v his_o absolute_a power_n or_o miracle_n in_o work_v but_o a_o certain_a ordinary_a mean_n agreeable_a to_o man_n capacity_n although_o he_o can_v in_o deed_n give_v faith_n without_o those_o mean_n to_o who_o when_o and_o how_o it_o please_v he_o but_o we_o read_v that_o the_o lord_n have_v use_v this_o ordinary_a mean_n even_o from_o the_o first_o creation_n of_o all_o thing_n who_o he_o mean_v to_o bestow_v knowledge_n and_o faith_n on_o to_o they_o he_o send_v teacher_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o preach_v true_a faith_n unto_o they_o not_o because_o it_o lie_v in_o man_n power_n will_n or_o ministry_n to_o give_v faith_n nor_o because_o the_o outward_a word_n speak_v by_o man_n mouth_n be_v able_a of_o itself_o to_o bring_v faith_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o man_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o god_n word_n do_v teach_v we_o what_o true_a faith_n be_v or_o what_o god_n do_v will_n and_o command_v we_o to_o believe_v for_o god_n himself_o alone_o by_o send_v his_o holy_a spirit_n into_o the_o heart_n and_o mind_n of_o man_n do_v open_v our_o heart_n persuade_v our_o mind_n and_o cause_v we_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o teach_n have_v learn_v to_o believe_v the_o lord_n can_v by_o miracle_n from_o heaven_n without_o any_o preach_n at_o all_o have_v bestow_v faith_n in_o christ_n upon_o cornelius_n the_o centurion_n at_o cesaria_n but_o yet_o by_o a_o angel_n he_o do_v send_v he_o to_o the_o preach_n of_o peter_n and_o while_o peter_n preach_v god_n by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n work_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o cornelius_n cause_v he_o to_o believe_v his_o preach_n very_o saint_n paul_n say_v how_o shall_v they_o believe_v in_o he_o of_o who_o they_o have_v not_o hear_v how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n and_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v if_o they_o be_v not_o send_v so_o then_o faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god._n in_o another_o place_n also_o who_o be_v paul_n say_v he_o or_o what_o be_v apollo_n but_o minister_n by_o who_o you_o have_v believe_v according_a as_o god_n have_v give_v to_o every_o one_o i_o have_v plant_v apollo_n water_v but_o god_n have_v give_v increase_n so_o then_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v nothing_o nor_o he_o that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v increase_v with_o this_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n peter_n and_o saint_n paul_n do_v that_o agree_v which_o augustine_n write_v in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n where_o he_o say_v that_o which_o we_o have_v to_o learn_v at_o man_n hand_n let_v every_o one_o learn_v at_o man_n hand_n without_o disdain_n and_o let_v we_o not_o go_v about_o to_o tempt_v he_o in_o who_o we_o believe_v neither_o be_v deceive_v let_v we_o think_v scorn_n to_o go_v to_o church_n to_o hear_v or_o learn_v out_o of_o book_n look_v still_o when_o we_o shall_v be_v rapt_v up_o into_o the_o third_o heaven_n let_v we_o take_v heed_n of_o such_o like_a temptation_n of_o pride_n and_o let_v we_o rather_o have_v this_o in_o our_o mind_n that_o even_o the_o apostle_n paul_n himself_o although_o he_o be_v cast_v prostrate_a and_o instruct_v by_o the_o call_n of_o god_n from_o heaven_n be_v nevertheless_o send_v to_o a_o man_n to_o be_v teach_v the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o that_o cornelius_n although_o god_n have_v hear_v his_o prayer_n be_v commit_v to_o peter_n to_o be_v instruct_v by_o who_o he_o shall_v not_o only_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n but_o shall_v also_o hear_v what_o he_o ought_v to_o believe_v what_o to_o hope_v for_o and_o what_o to_o love_v all_o which_o thing_n notwithstanding_o may_v have_v be_v do_v by_o the_o angel_n etc_n etc_n the_o same_o augustine_n also_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o circenses_fw-la say_v even_o he_o work_v conversion_n and_o bring_v it_o to_o pass_v who_o by_o his_o minister_n do_v warn_v we_o outward_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o thing_n but_o inward_o do_v by_o himself_o teach_v we_o with_o the_o very_a thing_n themselves_o also_o in_o his_o treatise_n upon_o the_o 26._o of_o john_n what_o do_v man_n say_v he_o when_o they_o preach_v outward_o what_o do_v i_o now_o while_o i_o speak_v i_o drive_v into_o your_o ear_n a_o noise_n of_o word_n but_o unless_o he_o which_o be_v with_o in_o do_v reveal_v it_o what_o say_v i_o or_o what_o speak_v i_o he_o that_o be_v without_o do_v husband_n the_o tree_n but_o he_o within_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o it_o etc_n etc_n this_o say_v he_o but_o even_o as_o the_o lord_n his_o desire_n be_v faith_n to_o have_v we_o believe_v his_o word_n for_o the_o prophet_n cry_v out_o and_o say_v to_o day_n if_o you_o will_v hear_v his_o voice_n harden_v not_o your_o heart_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o do_v require_v of_o we_o all_o which_o hear_v his_o word_n that_o we_o be_v not_o slack_a in_o pray_v for_o in_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n we_o must_v pray_v for_o the_o gift_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o lord_n may_v open_v our_o heart_n convert_v our_o soul_n break_v and_o beat_v down_o the_o hardness_n of_o our_o mind_n and_o increase_v the_o measure_n of_o faith_n bestow_v upon_o we_o of_o this_o order_n of_o prayer_n there_o be_v many_o example_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n when_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v to_o one_o can_v thou_o believe_v to_o he_o that_o believe_v all_o thing_n be_v possible_a he_o make_v answer_v say_v i_o believe_v lord_n help_v thou_o my_o unbelief_n the_o apostle_n also_o cry_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o say_v oh_o lord_n increase_v our_o faith_n moreover_o this_o prayer_n wherein_o we_o desire_v to_o have_v faith_n pour_v into_o we_o be_v of_o the_o grace_n &_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o not_o of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n which_o before_o god_n be_v none_o at_o all_o this_o therefore_o be_v leave_v unto_o we_o for_o a_o thing_n most_o certain_a and_o undoubted_o true_a that_o true_a faith_n be_v the_o mere_a gift_n of_o god_n which_o be_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o heaven_n bestow_v upon_o our_o mind_n and_o be_v declare_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n by_o teacher_n send_v of_o god_n and_o be_v obtain_v by_o earnest_a prayer_n which_o can_v be_v tire_v whereby_o we_o learn_v that_o we_o ought_v often_o and_o attentive_o to_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o never_o cease_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o true_a faith_n but_o that_o
know_v nor_o leave_v in_o write_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n some_o there_o be_v that_o d●e_a attribute_n it_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o therefore_o do_v call_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n saint_n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n in_o his_o exposition_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n say_v our_o ancestor_n have_v a_o say_n that_o after_o the_o lord_n ascension_n when_o by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o fiery_a tongue_n sit_v upon_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n so_o that_o they_o speak_v both_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a language_n whereby_o there_o be_v no_o foreign_a nation_n nor_o barbarous_a tongue_n to_o which_o they_o seem_v not_o sufficient_o prepare_v to_o pass_v by_o the_o way_n they_o have_v a_o commandment_n from_o the_o lord_n to_o go_v unto_o all_o nation_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o therefore_o they_o be_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o depart_v they_o lay_v down_o among_o themselves_o a_o platform_n of_o preach_v for_o they_o all_o to_o follow_v lest_o peradventure_o be_v sever_v one_o from_o another_o they_o shall_v preach_v diverse_a thing_n to_o they_o that_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o be_v there_o altogether_o and_o replenish_v with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o gather_v one_o every_o one_o several_a sentence_n and_o make_v that_o breviarie_n as_o i_o say_v to_o be_v a_o pattern_n for_o all_o their_o preach_n to_o be_v frame_v by_o appoint_v it_o for_o a_o rule_n to_o be_v give_v to_o they_o that_o shall_v believe_v this_o say_v cyprian_a but_o whether_o they_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n own_o make_n or_o no_o or_o else_o that_o other_o the_o apostle_n disciple_n make_v they_o yet_o this_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v pure_o contain_v and_o teach_v in_o they_o these_o twelve_o article_n be_v call_v also_o a_o badge_n because_o by_o that_o sign_n as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o badge_n true_a christian_n be_v discern_v from_o false_a now_o i_o will_v declare_v what_o order_n i_o will_v use_v in_o expound_v they_o unto_o creed_n you_o this_o whole_a breviatie_n or_o abridgement_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v divide_v into_o four_o part_n so_o that_o the_o three_o first_o part_n may_v make_v manifest_a the_o mystery_n of_o the_o three_o person_n in_o one_o godhead_n and_o that_o the_o four_o may_v lay_v forth_o the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v what_o good_a thing_n we_o look_v for_o by_o faith_n &_o what_o good_a thing_n god_n bestow_v on_o they_o that_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o he_o and_o yet_o this_o notwithstanding_o i_o will_v proceed_v herein_o even_o orderly_a so_o as_o the_o twelve_o article_n be_v place_v or_o set_v down_o the_o first_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v this_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o this_o first_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n contain_v then_o especial_a point_n for_o first_o we_o say_v general_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n then_o we_o descend_v particular_o to_o the_o distinction_n of_o the_o person_n and_o add_v the_o father_n almighty_a for_o god_n be_v one_o in_o substance_n and_o three_o in_o person_n person_n wherefore_o understanding_n the_o unity_n of_o the_o substance_n we_o say_v plain_o i_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o again_o keep_v &_o not_o confound_v the_o person_n we_o add_v in_o the_o father_n almighty_a in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a ghost_n let_v we_o therefore_o be_v léeve_o that_o god_n be_v one_o not_o many_o and_o pure_a in_o substance_n but_o three_o in_o person_n the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o in_o the_o law_n it_o be_v write_v harken_v israel_n the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v one_o lord._n and_o again_o in_o the_o gospel_n we_o read_v that_o the_o lord_n say_v baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o the_o way_n this_o be_v singular_o to_o be_v god_n mark_v of_o we_o that_o when_o we_o pray_v we_o say_v our_o father_n which_o art_n in_o heaven_n give_v we_o this_o day_n our_o daily_a bread_n but_o that_o when_o we_o make_v confession_n of_o our_o belief_n we_o say_v not_o we_o believe_v but_o i_o believe_v for_o faith_n be_v require_v of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o for_o every_o particular_a man_n to_o have_v wythonte_fw-fr dissimulation_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o without_o double_a meaning_n to_o profess_v it_o with_o his_o mouth_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o for_o abraham_n to_o have_v faith_n for_o all_o his_o seed_n neither_o will_n if_o avail_v thou_o any_o thing_n for_o a_o other_o to_o believe_v if_o thou_o thyself_o art_n without_o faith_n for_o the_o lord_n require_v faith_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n for_o himself_o wherefore_o so_o oft_o as_o we_o confess_v our_o faith_n every_o one_o of_o we_o by_o himself_o do_v say_v i_o believe_v but_o what_o it_o be_v to_o brleeve_v i_o have_v declare_v already_o in_o my_o four_o sermon_n it_o follow_v in_o the_o confession_n i_o believe_v in_o god_n god_n be_v the_o object_n and_o foundation_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o he_o that_o be_v the_o everlasting_a and_o chief_a goodness_n never_o weary_a but_o always_o ready_a at_o our_o need_n we_o therefore_o believe_v in_o god_n that_o be_v to_o say_v we_o put_v our_o whole_a hope_n all_o our_o safety_n and_o ourselves_o whole_o into_o his_o hand_n as_o unto_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o preserve_v and_o bestow_v on_o we_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v requisite_a for_o our_o behoof_n now_o it_o follow_v that_o that_o god_n father_n in_o who_o we_o rest_v and_o unto_o who_o tuition_n we_o do_v all_o commit_v ourselves_o be_v the_o father_n almightye_n our_o god_n be_v therefore_o call_v father_n because_o from_o before_o all_o begin_v he_o beget_v the_o son_n like_v to_o himself_o for_o the_o scripture_n call_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lively_a image_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o father_n to_o who_o he_o say_v thou_o be_v my_o son_n this_o day_n have_v i_o beget_v thou_o and_o again_o i_o will_v be_v his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v my_o son_n also_o god_n be_v call_v father_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o likeness_n that_o he_o have_v with_o our_o earthly_a father_n to_o wit_n because_o of_o our_o creation_n the_o favour_n love_n good_a will_n &_o carefulness_n where_o with_o he_o be_v affect_v towards_o we_o for_o god_n have_v create_v we_o god_n love_v we_o god_n regard_v our_o affair_n and_o be_v careful_a for_o we_o yea_o and_o that_o more_o exceed_o too_o than_o any_o earthly_a father_n be_v for_o say_v david_n even_o as_o the_o father_n pity_v his_o child_n so_o do_v the_o lord_n pity_v they_o that_o fear_v he_o for_o he_o know_v our_o estate_n remember_v that_o we_o be_v but_o dust_n esaias_n also_o in_o his_o 49._o cap._n say_v can_v a_o woman_n forget_v she_o own_o infant_n and_o not_o pity_n and_o be_v fain_o over_o the_o son_n of_o her_o own_o womb_n but_o admit_v she_o do_v forget_v yet_o will_v not_o i_o forget_v thou_o in_o this_o be_v declare_v god_n good_a will_n to_o we_o ward_n and_o we_o confess_v that_o god_n be_v our_o father_n do_v also_o profess_v that_o god_n to_o we_o be_v both_o gentle_a liberal_a and_o merciful_a who_o wish_v we_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v available_a to_o our_o health_n and_o purpose_v nothing_o to_o we_o ward_n but_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o wholesome_a and_o last_o of_o all_o that_o at_o his_o hand_n we_o receive_v what_o good_a soever_o we_o have_v either_o bodily_a or_o ghostly_a god_n be_v call_v almighty_a because_o by_o almighty_a his_o might_n he_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n because_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o all_o thing_n and_o have_v all_o thing_n subject_v to_o his_o commandment_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n also_o be_v he_o call_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n heaven_n earth_n and_o whatsoever_o be_v therein_o star_n all_o element_n man_n angel_n devil_n all_o live_a creature_n all_o thing_n create_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o most_o high_a and_o everlasting_a god_n what_o soever_o he_o command_v that_o they_o do_v nothing_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v his_o will._n what_o he_o will_v that_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v do_v and_o also_o these_o thing_n he_o use_v even_o as_o his_o own_o will_n and_o pleasure_n be_v and_o as_o his_o justice_n and_o man_n salvation_n do_v require_v first_o we_o confess_v that_o god_n do_v will_v we_o well_o and_o now_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v that_o he_o be_v able_a to_o bring_v
judgement_n let_v therefore_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v upon_o you_o and_o take_v heed_n and_o be_v diligent_a for_o there_o be_v no_o unrighteousness_n with_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n that_o he_o shall_v have_v any_o respect_n of_o person_n or_o take_v any_o reward_n to_o these_o i_o will_v yet_o add_v a_o few_o place_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n more_o which_o shall_v partly_o make_v manifest_a those_o that_o go_v before_o and_o partly_o expound_v and_o more_o plain_o express_v the_o office_n of_o the_o judge_n in_o deuteronomie_n we_o read_v the_o judge_n shall_v judge_v the_o people_n with_o equity_n and_o justice_n thou_o shall_v not_o pervert_v judgement_n nor_o have_v respect_n of_o person_n nor_o take_v a_o reward_n for_o a_o reward_n do_v blind_a the_o eye_n of_o the_o wise_a and_o pervert_v the_o word_n of_o the_o righteous_a thou_o shall_v do_v judgement_n with_o justice_n that_o thou_o may_v live_v and_o possess_v the_o land._n again_o in_o exodus_fw-la we_o find_v thou_o shall_v not_o follow_v a_o multitude_n to_o do_v evil_a neither_o shall_v thou_o speak_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o justice_n accord_v to_o the_o great_a number_n for_o to_o pervert_v judgement_n exod●●_n neither_o shall_v thou_o esteem_v a_o poor_a man_n in_o his_o cause_n keep_v thou_o far_o from_o false_a matter_n and_o the_o innocent_a and_o righteous_a see_v thou_o slay_v not_o for_o i_o will_v not_o justify_v the_o wicked_a thou_o shall_v take_v no_o reward_n for_o reward_n blind_v the_o see_v and_o pervert_v the_o word_n of_o the_o righteous_a in_o leviticus_fw-la also_o we_o have_v levi●●●_n this_o you_o shall_v do_v no_o unrighteousness_n in_o judgement_n thou_o shall_v not_o favour_n the_o personne_fw-fr of_o the_o poor_a nor_o honour_v the_o mighty_a but_o in_o righteousness_n shall_v thou_o judge_v thy_o neighbour_n again_o you_o shall_v do_v no_o unrighteousness_n in_o judgement_n in_o metyarde_n in_o weight_n or_o in_o measure_n true_a balance_n true_a weighte_n a_o true_a epha_n and_o a_o true_a hin_n shall_v you_o have_v i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n etc_n etc_n i_o suppose_v very_o and_o be_o thus_o persuade_v that_o in_o these_o few_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v comprehend_v all_o that_o which_o profound_a philosopher_n and_o layer_n of_o great_a learning_n do_v scarce_o absolve_v in_o infinite_a book_n and_o volume_n of_o many_o leaf_n beside_o all_o this_o the_o most_o holy_a prophet_n 〈◊〉_d jeremy_n cry_v to_o the_o king_n and_o say_v keep_v equity_n and_o righteousness_n deliver_v the_o oppress_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o violent_a do_v not_o grieve_v nor_o oppress_v the_o stranger_n the_o fatherless_a or_o the_o widow_n and_o shed_v no_o innocent_a blood_n thus_o much_o touch_v the_o office_n of_o judge_n but_o in_o the_o eye_n of_o some_o man_n this_o christian_n our_o discourse_n may_v seem_v vain_a and_o fruitless_a unless_o we_o do_v also_o refute_v their_o objection_n whereby_o they_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v that_o plead_n and_o law_n matter_n be_v at_o a_o end_n because_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v to_o he_o that_o will_v sue_v thou_o at_o the_o law_n and_o take_v away_o thy_o coat_n let_v he_o have_v thy_o cloak_n also_o and_o again_o while_o thou_o be_v yet_o with_o thine_o adversary_n upon_o the_o way_n agree_v with_o he_o quick_o lest_o he_o deliver_v thou_o to_o the_o tormentor_n they_o add_v moreover_o the_o strife_n in_o the_o law_n which_o s._n paul_n the_o apostle_n in_o the_o s●●te_a chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n do_v flat_o condemn_v to_o all_o which_o objection_n my_o answer_n be_v this_o as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o evangelist_n and_o apostle_n do_v not_o abrogate_v the_o private_a order_n of_o particular_a house_n so_o do_v it_o not_o condemn_v or_o disannul_v the_o public_a government_n of_o common_a weal_n the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n after_o s._n luke_n chide_v with_o and_o repel_v the_o young_a man_n who_o desire_v he_o to_o speak_v to_o his_o brother_n for_o a_o equal_a division_n of_o the_o inheritance_n betwixt_o they_o he_o blame_v he_o not_o for_o because_o he_o think_v ill_a of_o he_o that_o claim_v a_o equal_a division_n or_o that_o part_n of_o the_o inheritance_n that_o be_v he_o by_o right_a but_o because_o he_o think_v that_o it_o be_v not_o his_o duty_n but_o the_o judge_n office_n to_o deal_v in_o such_o case_n the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n in_o that_o place_n be_v these_o who_o have_v appoint_v i_o a_o judge_n between_o you_o and_o a_o divider_n of_o land_n and_o inheritance_n and_o again_o as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o gospel_n if_o any_o man_n will_v sue_v thou_o at_o the_o law_n and_o take_v away_o thy_o coat_n give_v he_o thy_o cloak_n also_o so_o on_o the_o other_o side_n against_o this_o do_v of_o injury_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o busy_o handle_v and_o require_v in_o all_o the_o evangelical_a doctrine_n than_o charity_n and_o welldoinge_v but_o a_o good_a deed_n be_v do_v in_o nothing_o more_o than_o in_o judgement_n and_o justice_n since_o therefore_o that_o judgement_n be_v invent_v for_o the_o practice_v and_o preserve_v of_o justice_n and_o upright_a deal_v it_o be_v manifest_a that_o to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o controversy_n be_v not_o forbid_v 1._o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o notable_a prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n esai_n and_o zacharie_n cry_v out_o and_o say_v cease_v to_o do_v evil_a learn_v to_o do_v good_a seek_v after_o judgement_n help_v the_o oppress_a 7._o and_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n execute_v true_a judgement_n show_v mercy_n and_o love_a kindness_n every_o man_n to_o his_o brother_n do_v the_o widow_n the_o fatherless_a the_o stranger_n and_o poor_a no_o wrong_a they_o sin_n therefore_o that_o go_v on_o to_o hinder_v judgement_n and_o to_o thrust_v judge_n beside_o their_o seat_n for_o as_o they_o pull_v away_o from_o the_o true_a god_n no_o small_a part_n of_o his_o worship_n so_o do_v they_o open_v a_o wide_a gate_n to_o wrong_v robbery_n and_o oppression_n of_o the_o poor_a the_o lord_n i_o grant_v command_v that_o which_o our_o adversary_n have_v allege_v meaning_n there_o by_o to_o settle_v quietness_n among_o his_o people_n but_o because_o the_o malice_n of_o man_n be_v invincible_a and_o the_o long_o suffer_v of_o silly_a soul_n make_v wicked_a knave_n more_o mischievous_a therefore_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o forbid_v nor_o condemn_v the_o moderate_a use_n of_o judgement_n in_o law_n moreover_o we_o read_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o paul_n do_v often_o than_o once_o use_v the_o benefit_n of_o judgement_n not_o for_o money_n or_o good_n but_o for_o his_o life_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o save_v and_o defend_v from_o they_o that_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o kill_v he_o neither_o consent_v he_o to_o the_o unjust_a judgement_n of_o festus_n the_o precedent_n but_o appeal_v to_o caesar_n and_o yet_o we_o know_v that_o paul_n do_v not_o offend_v therein_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o same_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n do_v not_o absolute_o condemn_v the_o corinthian_n for_o go_v to_o law_n about_o thing_n belong_v to_o their_o live_n but_o because_o they_o sue_v and_o trouble_v one_o a_o other_o before_o heathen_a judge_n it_o be_v good_a and_o seemly_a without_o doubt_n to_o suffer_v wrong_n with_o a_o patient_a mind_n but_o because_o it_o please_v the_o lord_n to_o ordain_v judgement_n to_o be_v a_o mean_a of_o help_n and_o succour_v to_o they_o that_o be_v oppress_v with_o injury_n he_o sin_v not_o at_o all_o that_o seek_v to_o keep_v himself_o from_o wrong_n not_o by_o private_a revengement_n but_o by_o the_o upright_a sentence_n of_o judge_n in_o law_n and_o therefore_o do_v the_o apostle_n command_v the_o corinthian_n to_o choose_v out_o to_o themselu●s_n among_o the_o faithful_a such_o judge_n as_o may_v take_v up_o temporal_a matter_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o that_o fall_v at_o variance_n thus_o have_v i_o declare_v unto_o you_o magistrate_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o magistrate_n office_n which_o consist_v in_o judgement_n i_o will_v now_o therefore_o descend_v to_o the_o exposition_n of_o the_o three_o and_o last_o part_n which_o comprehend_v revengement_n and_o punishment_n for_o the_o magistrate_n by_o his_o office_n bear_v the_o sword_n and_o therefore_o be_v he_o command_v by_o god_n to_o take_v revengement_n for_o the_o wrong_n do_v to_o the_o good_a and_o to_o punish_v the_o evil_n for_o the_o sword_n be_v god_n vengeance_n sword_n or_o instrument_n wherewith_o he_o strike_v the_o stroke_n to_o revenge_v himself_o upon_o his_o enemy_n for_o the_o injury_n do_v unto_o he_o and_o be_v in_o the_o scripture_n general_o take_v for_o vengeance_n and_o punishment_n the_o
say_v ill_a word_n corrupt_v good_a manner_n moreover_o a_o man_n mind_n be_v bewray_v by_o his_o talk_n for_o of_o the_o heart_n abundance_n the_o mouth_n do_v speak_v if_o therefore_o in_o any_o thing_n than_o in_o tongue_n especial_o it_o behove_v christian_n to_o be_v sober_a and_o continent_n the_o lord_n i_o confess_v have_v grant_v man_n the_o use_n of_o certain_a pleasure_n pleasure_n for_o he_o may_v lawful_o without_o offence_n to_o god_n clothe_v his_o body_n with_o garment_n 〈◊〉_d thereby_o to_o keep_v his_o limb_n from_o cold_a god_n have_v and_o do_v allow_v the_o embrace_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n in_o holy_a wedlock_n he_o grant_v choice_n of_o a_o dwell_a place_n convenient_o situate_v against_o the_o untemperateness_n of_o the_o air_n and_o bid_v we_o not_o to_o wander_v like_o beast_n and_o cattle_n through_o field_n and_o desolate_a wood_n he_o have_v for_o our_o necessity_n and_o pleasant_a feed_n allow_v we_o the_o use_n of_o meat_n &_o drink_v he_o grant_v we_o quietness_n ease_n and_o sleep_n which_o do_v wonderful_o refresh_v the_o strength_n that_o be_v decay_v and_o tire_v with_o pain_n therefore_o so_o often_o as_o a_o godly_a man_n do_v enjoy_v they_o do_v use_v they_o and_o be_v delight_v with_o the_o honest_a pleasure_n of_o they_o let_v he_o give_v thank_n to_o god_n and_o use_v they_o moderate_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o in_o so_o do_v he_o sin_v not_o against_o the_o lord_n but_o by_o the_o abuse_n of_o those_o thing_n by_o unthankfulness_n for_o they_o and_o by_o immoderate_a use_v of_o they_o he_o do_v offend_v his_o god_n and_o maker_n for_o what_o be_v allow_v or_o permit_v to_o marry_a folk_n i_o have_v already_o declare_v in_o this_o very_a sermon_n so_o that_o i_o need_v not_o here_o again_o to_o repeat_v it_o un_fw-fr to_o you_o solomon_n say_v be_v glad_a with_o the_o wife_n of_o thy_o youth_n let_v she_o be_v as_o the_o belove_a hind_n and_o pleasant_a roe_n let_v she_o love_v always_o refresh_v thou_o and_o be_v thou_o still_o delight_v therein_o etc_n etc_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v every_o one_o refrain_n from_o all_o abuse_n and_o intemperancy_n and_o if_o necessity_n at_o any_o time_n require_v it_o let_v man_n and_o wife_n lie_v a_o sunder_o as_o paul_n do_v counsel_v they_o or_o else_o let_v they_o give_v ear_n to_o the_o prophet_n joel_n who_o say_v proclaim_v a_o holy_a fast_n gather_v the_o people_n together_o let_v the_o bride_n groom_n come_v forth_o of_o his_o chamber_n &_o the_o bride_n out_o of_o her_o cloaset_n our_o garment_n must_v be_v clean_o 〈…〉_o and_o honest_a according_a to_o our_o country_n fashion_n to_o cover_v and_o become_v we_o unless_o our_o country_n fashion_n be_v too_o far_o out_o of_o order_n there_o must_v be_v in_o they_o no_o hypocritical_a sluttishness_n beeyonde_a sea_n gaud_n new-fangled_a toy_n nor_o unseemly_a sight_n the_o chief_a apostle_n of_o christ_n peter_n and_o paul_n be_v not_o 2._o ashamed_a in_o their_o epistle_n to_o write_v somewhat_o large_o touch_v the_o manner_n and_o order_n of_o woman_n apparel_n because_o that_o kind_a of_o people_n do_v most_o of_o all_o bend_n to_o that_o foolish_a bravery_n let_v every_o faithful_a body_n think_v what_o be_v seemly_a for_o they_o to_o wear_v not_o so_o much_o by_o their_o degree_n in_o dignity_n or_o condition_n of_o riches_n as_o by_o their_o religion_n excess_n in_o every_o thing_n be_v discommend_v in_o christian_n and_o to_o what_o end_n do_v we_o iagge_v and_o gashe_v the_o garment_n that_o be_v sow_v together_o to_o cover_v our_o body_n but_o that_o thereby_o we_o may_v as_o it_o be_v by_o a_o most_o fond_a and_o ridiculous_a anatomy_n open_a and_o lay_v forth_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o man_n what_o kind_n of_o people_n we_o be_v in_o our_o inward_a heart_n jagged_a god_n wot_v and_o ragged_a vain_a light_n and_o nothing_o sound_v and_o a_o linen_n or_o woollen_a garment_n do_v as_o well_o cover_v and_o become_v the_o body_n as_o damask_n and_o velvet_n the_o cost_n whereof_o do_v overlade_v thy_o purse_n with_o expense_n to_o buy_v they_o and_o misshape_a thou_o like_o a_o ill_a favour_a picture_n when_o thou_o wear_v they_o upon_o thou_o in_o building_n god_n forbid_v not_o building_n cleanliness_n and_o necessary_a cost_n but_o sumptuous_a expense_n and_o gorgeous_a excess_n for_o these_o over_o brave_a building_n be_v seldom_o time_n finish_v without_o extort_v wrong_n and_o over_o great_a injury_n do_v to_o the_o poor_a jeremy_n bring_v in_o the_o lord_n speak_v against_o the_o king_n of_o juda_n and_o say_v woe_n to_o he_o that_o build_v his_o house_n with_o unrighteousness_n and_o his_o parlor_n with_o the_o good_n that_o be_v wrongful_o get_v which_o never_o recompense_v his_o neigh_v bour_v labour_n nor_o pay_v he_o his_o hire_n who_o say_v to_o himself_o i_o will_v build_v i_o a_o wide_a house_n and_o gorgeous_a parloure_n who_o cause_v window_n to_o be_v hew_v therein_o and_o the_o seelinge_n and_o joist_n make_v he_o of_o cedar_n and_o paint_v they_o with_o sinope_a think_v thou_o to_o reign_v now_o that_o thou_o have_v enclose_a thou_o self_n with_o cedar_n do_v not_o thy_o father_n eat_v and_o drink_v and_o prosper_v well_o as_o long_o as_o he_o execute_v justice_n and_o equity_n let_v none_o of_o we_o therefore_o build_v sumptuous_a house_n by_o rob_v the_o poor_a of_o their_o hire_n for_o their_o labour_n let_v every_o one_o dwell_v in_o a_o house_n agreeable_a to_o his_o profession_n degree_n and_o condition_n s._n hierome_n condemn_v sumptuous_a cost_n even_o in_o church_n and_o temple_n neither_o do_v i_o see_v what_o gorgeous_a building_n bring_v to_o a_o man_n but_o mischief_n and_o misery_n lord_n how_o unwilling_o do_v we_o die_v &_o depart_v from_o goodly_a dwelling_n whereby_o we_o double_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o terror_n of_o sickness_n the_o patriarch_n very_o do_v dwell_v in_o tent_n whereby_o they_o witness_v that_o they_o be_v pilgrim_n and_o seek_v another_o country_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n continency_n in_o meat_n and_o drink_n be_v not_o the_o loathinge_n of_o wine_n and_o victual_n drink_v but_o the_o moderate_a use_v of_o they_o to_o supply_v our_o necessity_n and_o not_o to_o cloy_v we_o with_o gluttony_n god_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v condemn_v gluttony_n surfettinge_n riotous_a afterbanquette_n and_o drunkenness_n which_o he_o forbid_v most_o of_o all_o for_o of_o drunkenness_n do_v springe_n endless_a misery_n and_o innumerable_a mischief_n grievous_a disease_n poverty_n and_o pinch_a beggary_n solomon_n say_v who_o have_v woe_n who_o have_v sorrow_n who_o have_v strife_n who_o have_v brawl_v who_o have_v wound_n without_o a_o cause_n who_o have_v red_a eye_n even_o they_o that_o follow_v the_o wine_n and_o seek_v excess_n thereof_o look_v not_o thou_o upon_o the_o wine_n how_o red_a it_o be_v and_o what_o a_o colour_n it_o give_v in_o the_o glass_n it_o go_v down_o sweet_o but_o at_o the_o last_o it_o bite_v like_o a_o serpent_n and_o poison_v like_o a_o adder_n i_o will_v not_o rehearse_v all_o which_o i_o can_v allege_v out_o of_o heathen_a writer_n against_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n solomon_n alone_o in_o that_o one_o sentence_n contain_v a_o great_a drunkenness_n deal_n of_o matter_n moreover_o he_o that_o hear_v not_o christ_n who_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o he_o will_v give_v ear_n unto_o in_o all_o the_o world_n now_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n by_o the_o parable_n of_o the_o rich_fw-fr glutton_n do_v marvellous_a evident_o set_v forth_o the_o woeful_a end_n of_o insatiable_a paunch_n in_o the_o same_o gospel_n also_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o touch_v the_o surfeit_n and_o drunkenness_n of_o our_o age_n i_o mean_v the_o age_n which_o be_v immediate_o before_o the_o judgement_n day_n where_o he_o say_v as_o it_o happen_v in_o the_o day_n of_o no_n and_o lot_n they_o do_v eat_v and_o drink_v even_o until_o the_o day_n that_o no_o enter_v into_o the_o ark_n and_o that_o let_v depart_v from_o among_o the_o sodomite_n and_o then_o incontinent_o the_o deluge_n come_v and_o fire_n &_o brimstone_n pour_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o destroy_v they_o al._n again_o he_o add_v take_v heed_n to_o yourselves_o least_o at_o any_o time_n your_o heart_n be_v overcome_v with_o surfeit_v and_o drunkenness_n &_o care_n of_o this_o life_n and_o so_o that_o day_n come_v upon_o you_o at_o unaware_o for_o as_o a_o snare_n shall_v it_o come_v upon_o all_o they_o that_o dwell_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o whole_a earth_n watch_v you_o therefore_o at_o all_o time_n pray_v that_o you_o may_v escape_v all_o these_o thing_n and_o stand_v before_o the_o son_n of_o man._n and_o i_o will_v to_o god_n that_o all_o man_n will_v not_o write_v this_o golden_a heavenly_a and_o divine_a admonition_n of_o our_o
there_o be_v which_o affirm_v and_o uphold_v the_o fast_n of_o lent_n the_o embr_a day_n and_o such_o other_o to_o be_v the_o fast_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v there_o be_v that_o say_v thou_o have_v not_o fast_v if_o by_o any_o mean_n thou_o taste_v any_o flesh_n and_o there_o be_v which_o prescribe_v and_o appoint_v some_o certain_a hour_n to_o fast_a in_o but_o i_o for_o my_o part_n see_v not_o any_o such_o doctrine_n to_o be_v teach_v we_o in_o that_o scripture_n for_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n keep_v not_o any_o of_o their_o devise_a fast_n when_o he_o fast_v forty_o day_n but_o do_v altogether_o abstain_v from_o all_o kind_n of_o meat_n even_o as_o moses_n and_o helias_n have_v also_o do_v wherefore_o he_o by_o that_o deed_n of_o he_o do_v not_o give_v we_o any_o law_n to_o fast_a so_o moreover_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n do_v evident_o teach_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o enter_v in_o by_o the_o mouth_n do_v not_o defile_v the_o man_n but_o that_o which_o issue_v out_o from_o his_o heart_n to_o the_o pure_a be_v all_o thing_n pure_a and_o paul_n say_v i_o know_v and_o be_o persuade_v through_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o nothing_o be_v common_a of_o itself_o but_o to_o he_o that_o think_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v common_a to_o he_o be_v it_o common_a again_o let_v not_o he_o which_o eat_v despise_v he_o which_o eat_v not_o nor_o let_v he_o which_o eat_v not_o judge_v he_o which_o eat_v â–ª_o for_o he_o that_o eat_v the_o lord_n have_v take_v moreover_o the_o place_n be_v evident_a which_o the_o same_o paul_n write_v in_o the_o four_o chapter_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o forbid_v of_o meat_n be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n neither_o need_v any_o man_n here_o to_o tell_v we_o any_o whit_n of_o the_o tacians_n and_o encratites_n for_o they_o do_v slander_v the_o good_a creature_n of_o god_n paul_n speak_v of_o they_o who_z although_o they_o do_v not_o utter_o condemn_v meat_n and_o marriage_n do_v yet_o notwithstanding_o forbid_v the_o use_n of_o meat_n furthermore_o we_o do_v not_o read_v that_o fast_n any_o law_n be_v ordain_v in_o that_o age_n which_o follow_v next_o after_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o do_v command_v and_o prescribe_v any_o time_n and_o order_n of_o fast_v or_o choice_n of_o meat_n i_o will_v rehearse_v unto_o you_o dear_o belove_v the_o word_n of_o irenaeus_n the_o martyr_n which_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o eusebius_n be_v to_o be_v find_v word_n for_o word_n as_o they_o be_v here_o set_v down_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o only_o touch_v easter_n day_n but_o also_o touch_v the_o manner_n of_o fast_v for_o some_o do_v think_v that_o the_o fast_a aught_o to_o be_v keep_v but_o one_o day_n only_o other_o two_o other_o more_o and_o some_o whole_a 40._o day_n so_o that_o count_v the_o hour_n of_o the_o night_n and_o day_n they_o make_v a_o day_n which_o difference_n of_o observe_v the_o time_n be_v not_o now_o first_o of_o all_o in_o our_o age_n begone_v but_o be_v bring_v in_o a_o great_a while_n ago_o as_o i_o suppose_v of_o they_o which_o do_v not_o simple_o keep_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v from_o the_o beginning_n but_o either_o by_o negligence_n or_o unskilfulness_n fall_v afterward_o into_o a_o worse_a use_n and_o custom_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o all_o these_o though_o they_o jar_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o time_n be_v nevertheless_o and_o be_v agreeable_a with_o we_o neither_o have_v the_o discord_n about_o fast_v break_v our_o concord_n in_o faith_n thus_o much_o irenaeus_n moreover_o socrates_n constantinopolitanus_n in_o the_o 9_o book_n and_o 18._o chapter_n of_o his_o tripartite_a history_n witness_v that_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 453._o in_o the_o reign_n of_o theodosius_n the_o young_a y_fw-es same_o diversity_n be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o set_v it_o down_o in_o these_o word_n follow_v furthermore_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o abstinence_n from_o meat_n for_o some_o do_v altogether_o abstain_v from_o live_a creature_n some_o among_o live_a creature_n do_v eat_v fish_n only_o some_o with_o fish_n do_v feed_v on_o fowl_n also_o say_v that_o they_o as_o moses_n say_v have_v their_o substance_n of_o water_n some_o be_v know_v to_o absteme_a from_o herb_n and_o egg_n some_o do_v feed_v of_o root_n dry_a bread_n only_o some_o not_o so_o much_o as_o that_o some_o fast_a nine_o hour_n do_v then_o without_o difference_n use_v any_o kind_n of_o meat_n and_o innumerable_a custom_n be_v find_v among_o sundry_a man_n now_o the_o very_a same_o socrates_n show_v his_o opinion_n upon_o that_o diversity_n do_v say_v and_o forbecause_v no_o ancient_a writing_n be_v find_v touch_v this_o thing_n i_o think_v that_o the_o apostle_n leave_v it_o free_a to_o every_o man_n judgement_n that_o every_o one_o may_v work_v not_o by_o fear_n or_o necessity_n the_o thing_n that_o be_v good_a thus_o far_o socrates_n the_o fast_n of_o christian_n therefore_o ought_v to_o be_v free_a and_o not_o bind_v to_o law_n law_n apollinus_n a_o certain_a ancient_a and_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n dispute_v against_o montanus_n the_o heretic_n say_v this_o be_v he_o which_o teach_v that_o marriage_n be_v undo_v &_o which_o first_o of_o all_o have_v appoint_v law_n for_o man_n to_o fast_a by_o and_o very_o to_o go_v about_o to_o set_v down_o to_o all_o man_n and_o nation_n one_o manner_n of_o fast_v in_o one_o appoint_a time_n one_o prescribe_v order_n and_o choice_n of_o meat_n be_v a_o mere_a folly_n &_o a_o brainsick_a kind_n of_o madness_n for_o according_a to_o the_o choice_n of_o air_n so_o be_v man_n body_n of_o sundry_a temperature_n and_o one_o kind_n of_o meat_n do_v not_o stir_v man_n of_o sundry_a complexion_n to_o one_o kind_a of_o affection_n the_o most_o godly_a way_n therefore_o &_o profitable_a order_n for_o the_o church_n be_v that_o all_o pastor_n in_o every_o congregation_n shall_v teach_v sobriety_n temperancy_n and_o the_o true_a fast_a in_o deed_n not_o presume_v to_o prescribe_v any_o law_n for_o the_o choice_n of_o meat_n or_o time_n but_o leave_v that_o free_a to_o every_o man_n and_o nation_n who_o undoubted_o will_v have_v a_o especial_a eye_n to_o temper_v themselves_o from_o the_o thing_n by_o which_o they_o perceive_v that_o their_o health_n will_v be_v endanger_v but_o most_o of_o all_o in_o the_o time_n when_o the_o flesh_n begin_v to_o wax_v overwanton_a or_o when_o some_o great_a peril_n hang_v over_o their_o head_n for_o the_o time_n of_o fast_v be_v not_o prorogue_v till_o a_o appoint_a number_n of_o year_n or_o day_n be_v expire_v but_o till_o the_o looseness_n or_o wantonness_n of_o the_o flesh_n temptation_n or_o motion_n be_v utter_o bridle_v fast_n be_v so_o order_v as_o they_o be_v the_o exercise_n of_o godliness_n obtain_v great_a praise_n in_o deed_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o lord_n thus_o much_o hitherto_o touch_v fast_v commandment_n now_o to_o shut_v up_o this_o seven_o precept_n i_o say_v it_o forbidee_v all_o intemperancy_n it_o command_v holiness_n and_o the_o clean_a and_o lawful_a use_n of_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o whole_a body_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o short_a precept_n there_o be_v contain_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n for_o paul_n to_o the_o thessalonian_n say_v we_o beseech_v you_o brother_n and_o exhort_v you_o by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o you_o increase_v more_o and_o more_o as_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o we_o how_o you_o ought_v to_o walk_v and_o to_o please_v god_n for_o you_o know_v what_o commandment_n we_o give_v you_o by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o this_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n even_o your_o holiness_n that_o you_o shall_v abstain_v from_o fornication_n that_o every_o one_o of_o you_o shall_v know_v how_o to_o possess_v his_o vessel_n in_o holiness_n &_o honour_n not_o in_o the_o lust_n of_o concupiscence_n as_o the_o gentile_n which_o know_v not_o god_n god_n be_v a_o revenger_n of_o all_o such_o as_o we_o have_v forewarn_v you_o and_o testify_v for_o god_n have_v not_o call_v we_o unto_o uncleanness_n but_o unto_o holiness_n and_o straight_o way_n after_o again_o the_o god_n of_o peace_n sanctify_v you_o throughout_o that_o your_o whole_a spirit_n and_o soul_n &_o body_n may_v be_v preserve_v blameless_a in_o the_o come_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n i_o have_v again_o my_o brethren_n pass_v beyond_o the_o appoint_a time_n of_o a_o ordinary_a sermon_n stay_v you_o long_o than_o i_o be_o wont_a to_o do_v pardon_v this_o fault_n for_o i_o hope_v i_o have_v not_o trouble_v you_o almost_o two_o whole_a hour_n without_o profit_v you_o any_o whit_n at_o all_o make_v your_o prayer_n
ghost_n meaning_n be_v not_o to_o have_v such_o a_o order_n of_o life_n observe_v as_o these_o people_n do_v devise_v but_o that_o every_o man_n shall_v govern_v well_o his_o own_o house_n and_o family_n &_o relieve_v the_o brethren_n necessity_n according_a as_o his_o ability_n will_v suffer_v and_o bear_v to_o this_o end_n also_o do_v other_o place_n belong_v 1._o timothe_n 5._o titus_n 2._o 1._o thessaly_n 4._o 2._o thessaly_n 3._o and_o when_o in_o all_o his_o epistle_n almost_o he_o prescribe_v to_o parent_n and_o child_n to_o husband_n and_o wife_n to_o master_n and_o servant_n their_o office_n and_o duty_n what_o do_v he_o else_o but_o teach_v how_o to_o order_v our_o house_n &_o family_n thus_o much_o thus_o far_o what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o that_o more_o over_o that_o many_o wealthy_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v worshipper_n of_o god_n joseph_n of_o arimathea_n which_o bury_v the_o lord_n after_o he_o be_v crucify_v be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v a_o wealthy_a man_n &_o a_o disciple_n of_o christ_n also_o the_o woman_n be_v wealthy_a which_o follow_v the_o lord_n from_o galilee_n and_o minister_v to_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n of_o their_o good_n &_o substance_n the_o geld_a treasurer_n of_o queen_n candace_n be_v a_o wealthy_a man_n tabytha_n of_o joppa_n who_o peter_n raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n be_v rich_a and_o spend_v her_o substance_n free_o upon_o poor_a and_o needy_a people_n lydia_n the_o seller_n of_o purple_a be_v wealthy_a too_o and_o innumerable_a more_o who_o be_v both_o godly_a and_o faithful_a people_n whereas_o the_o lord_n therefore_o do_v say_v to_o the_o young_a man_n if_o thou_o will_v be_v perfect_a go_v and_o sell_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v and_o give_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o thou_o shall_v have_v treasure_n in_o heaven_n and_o come_v and_o follow_v i_o that_o be_v no_o general_a law_n or_o simple_a doctrine_n belong_v to_o all_o man_n but_o be_v a_o demonstration_n only_o to_o show_v that_o the_o young_a man_n to_o who_o he_o speak_v have_v not_o yet_o so_o perfect_o fulfil_v the_o law_n as_o he_o think_v very_o that_o he_o have_v d●n_o for_o he_o think_v he_o have_v do_v all_o and_o that_o nothing_o be_v want_v for_o the_o young_a man_n set_v more_o by_o his_o good_n than_o he_o do_v by_o god_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o god_n commandment_n for_o he_o depart_v sad_o and_o do_v not_o as_o the_o lord_n have_v bid_v he_o and_o thereby_o declare_v that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o fulfil_v the_o law_n moreover_o we_o may_v out_o of_o other_o place_n gather_v that_o the_o lord_n do_v not_o cas●e_v down_o his_o disciple_n to_o misery_n and_o beggary_n neither_o be_v paul_n the_o apostle_n ashamed_a to_o make_v law_n for_o rich_fw-fr man_n and_o to_o prescribe_v a_o order_n how_o they_o ought_v to_o behave_v themselves_o to_o they_o that_o be_v rich_fw-fr say_v he_o ▪_o in_o this_o world_n give_v charge_n that_o they_o be_v not_o high_a mind_v nor_o trust_v in_o uncertain_a riches_n but_o in_o the_o live_a god_n which_o give_v we_o abundant_o all_o thing_n to_o enjoy_v that_o they_o do_v good_a that_o they_o be_v rich_fw-fr in_o good_a work_v that_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v glad_a to_o distribute_v lay_v up_o in_o store_n for_o themselves_o a_o good_a foundation_n against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v that_o they_o may_v lay_v hold_n upon_o eternal_a life_n hereunto_o belong_v the_o admonition_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o say_v you_o can_v serve_v god_n &_o mammon_n at_o once_o again_o riches_n be_v thorn_n that_o choke_v the_o seed_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god._n and_o again_o very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o a_o rich_fw-fr man_n shall_v hardly_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v easy_a for_o a_o camel_n to_o go_v through_o the_o eye_n of_o a_o needle_n than_o for_o a_o rich_a man_n to_o enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god._n and_o as_o the_o mind_n of_o wealthy_a man_n be_v not_o utter_o to_o be_v discourage_v and_o drive_v to_o desperation_n as_o though_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o to_o be_v save_v so_o be_v they_o to_o be_v admonish_v of_o the_o imminente_fw-la peril_n lest_o peradventure_o they_o sleep_v secure_o over_o their_o riches_n be_v seduce_v by_o satan_n to_o abuse_v their_o wealth_n when_o as_o in_o deed_n they_o ought_v rather_o to_o use_v it_o after_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o i_o do_v even_o now_o recite_v the_o gangresian_a synod_n a_o very_a ancient_a counsel_n very_o condemn_v synodus_fw-la they_o which_o teach_v that_o faithful_a rich_fw-fr man_n can_v have_v no_o hope_n to_o be_v condemn_v save_v by_o the_o lord_n unless_o they_o do_v renounce_v and_o forsake_v all_o the_o good_a that_o they_o do_v possess_v s._n augustine_n enrol_v and_o reckon_v the_o apostolic_n in_o his_o catalogue_n or_o beadrowe_n of_o heretic_n they_o take_v arrogant_o this_o name_n to_o themselves_o do_v not_o admit_v into_o their_o company_n any_o of_o they_o which_o use_v the_o fellowship_n of_o their_o own_o wife_n or_o have_v in_o 〈◊〉_d any_o proper_a substance_n ▪_o 〈…〉_o they_o therefore_o 〈…〉_o because_o separate_n themselves_o from_o the_o church_n they_o think_v that_o they_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o be_v save_v which_o use_n and_o enjoy_v the_o thing_n that_o they_o themselves_o lack_v they_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o encratites_n and_o be_v call_v also_o by_o the_o name_n of_o apotactite_n touch_v riches_n they_o of_o themselves_o very_o be_v not_o evil_a but_o the_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o abuse_n that_o make_v they_o evil_a but_o for_o the_o use_n of_o they_o i_o will_v speak_v hereafter_o here_o follow_v now_o the_o treatise_n riches_n of_o the_o get_n of_o wealth_n and_o riches_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o our_o life_n and_o family_n touch_v the_o get_n whereof_o there_o be_v a_o large_a discourse_n among_o our_o lawyer_n for_o they_o say_v that_o good_n be_v get_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n and_o by_o the_o peculiar_a law_n of_o every_o particular_a country_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nation_n as_o by_o prevention_n in_o possession_n by_o captivity_n by_o find_v by_o birth_n by_o cast_v up_o of_o water_n by_o change_v the_o kind_n by_o increase_n in_o bondage_n by_o mixture_n by_o building_n plant_v sow_v till_v in_o a_o ground_n free_a from_o possession_n and_o by_o delivery_n by_o the_o peculiar_a law_n of_o every_o particular_a country_n as_o by_o continuance_n of_o possession_n by_o prescription_n by_o give_v by_o will_n by_o legacy_n by_o feoffment_n by_o succession_n by_o challenge_n by_o purchase_n of_o all_o which_o particular_o to_o speak_v it_o will_v be_v a_o labour_n too_o tedious_a and_o for_o you_o to_o hear_v dear_o belove_v little_a profitable_a that_o therefore_o which_o we_o be_v to_o say_v we_o will_v frame_v to_o the_o manner_n and_o custom_n of_o our_o age_n and_o we_o will_v utter_v that_o which_o shall_v tend_v to_o our_o avail_n principal_o and_o before_o all_o thing_n we_o must_v close_v and_o shut_v up_o a_o evil_a eye_n lest_o we_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o too_o much_o concupiscence_n and_o desire_n the_o light_n of_o the_o body_n say_v our_o saviour_n christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n be_v the_o eye_n if_o therefore_o thine_o eye_n be_v single_a thine_o whole_a body_n shall_v be_v lighten_v but_o if_o thine_o eye_n be_v evil_a thy_o body_n shall_v be_v all_o dark_a the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v endue_v with_o faith_n and_o not_o infect_v with_o concupiscence_n and_o naughty_a lust_n do_v give_v light_n to_o all_o thing_n that_o he_o shall_v take_v in_o hand_n go_v about_o and_o do_v but_o if_o his_o mind_n be_v corrupt_a and_o unclean_a then_o shall_v his_o deed_n savour_v also_o of_o corruption_n and_o uncleanness_n wherefore_o faith_n and_o a_o upright_a conscience_n must_v subdue_v and_o beat_v down_o too_o much_o concupiscence_n and_o covetousness_n which_o take_v their_o original_n and_o root_n from_o distrust_n make_v unholy_a and_o unclean_a all_o the_o counsel_n of_o man_n all_o his_o thought_n all_o his_o word_n and_o deed_n and_o that_o we_o may_v be_v able_a and_o of_o force_n sufficient_a to_o captivate_v &_o bring_v they_o into_o subjection_n necessary_a it_o be_v that_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n assist_v we_o which_o every_o godly_a mind_a man_n and_o woman_n do_v ask_v of_o god_n with_o godly_a and_o faithful_a prayer_n béehoofull_a it_o be_v that_o we_o always_o set_v before_o our_o eye_n and_o have_v deep_o grave_v in_o our_o heart_n the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n touch_v these_o and_o the_o instruction_n also_o of_o his_o holy_a apostle_n which_o be_v not_o so_o much_o but_o it_o may_v be_v well_o bear_v away_o we_o will_v therefore_o rehearse_v unto_o
shall_v once_o set_v a_o foot_n out_o of_o door_n until_o the_o next_o morning_n by_o which_o thing_n it_o be_v give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o neither_o christ_n nor_o our_o salvation_n be_v to_o be_v find_v without_o the_o church_n in_o the_o sect_n or_o schism_n of_o wicked_a heretic_n christ_n the_o lamb_n of_o god_n do_v gather_v all_o the_o faithful_a into_o one_o church_n wherein_o he_o keep_v they_o &_o last_o do_v save_v they_o last_o of_o all_o this_o ceremony_n do_v put_v god_n people_n in_o mind_n of_o their_o duty_n of_o thankfulness_n especial_o duty_n of_o y_fw-es study_v of_o godliness_n &_o harmless_a innocence_n they_o therefore_o do_v give_v thank_n to_o god_n for_o these_o &_o all_o other_o his_o benefit_n they_o praise_v his_o name_n and_o do_v utter_o abstain_v from_o all_o leaven_a bread_n for_o you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o so_o severe_o forbid_v in_o this_o ceremony_n as_o the_o eat_n of_o leaven_a bread_n who_o soever_o eat_v leaven_a bread_n say_v the_o lord_n his_o soul_n shall_v perish_v from_o among_o the_o congregation_n of_o israel_n whether_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n or_o a_o israelite_n bear_v the_o same_o say_n be_v afterward_o often_o time_n repeat_v &_o thorough_o beat_v into_o their_o brain_n now_o the_o apostle_n paul_n who_o cunning_a and_o learning_n be_v much_o in_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n expound_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o the_o leaven_a bread_n do_v say_v therefore_o let_v we_o keep_v the_o feast_n not_o in_o the_o old_a leaven_n nor_o in_o the_o leaven_n of_o malice_n and_o unrighteousness_n but_o in_o unleavened_a bread_n that_o be_v in_o sincerity_n &_o truth_n thus_o much_o hitherto_o touch_v in_o eat_n of_o you_o paschal_n lamb_n to_o these_o sacrament_n be_v also_o beginning_n add_v sacrifice_n of_o sundry_a sort_n &_o many_o kind_n which_o be_v not_o first_o invent_v and_o teach_v by_o moses_n but_o be_v take_v up_o and_o use_v immediate_o after_o the_o world_n be_v create_v for_o cain_n &_o abel_n offer_v burn_v sacrifice_n to_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o the_o world_n the_o one_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o the_o other_o of_o the_o cat-tail_n that_o be_v in_o his_o flock_n like_o wise_a seth_n noah_n sem_fw-mi abraham_n isaac_n and_o jacob_n with_o all_o the_o other_o patriarch_n be_v know_v to_o have_v sacrifice_v unto_o the_o lord_n now_o since_o the_o heathenish_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o the_o very_a heathen_a writer_n themselves_o do_v testify_v be_v partly_o like_a unto_o and_o in_o many_o point_v all_o one_o with_o the_o jewish_a sacrifice_n it_o be_v not_o unlikely_a but_o that_o the_o grand_a partriarch_n of_o the_o gentile_n do_v teach_v every_o one_o his_o own_o nation_n the_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_v which_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o their_o forefather_n sem_fw-mi cham_fw-mi japhet_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a patriarch_n noah_n himself_o but_o it_o be_v undoubted_o certain_a that_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v bring_v in_o nothing_o of_o their_o own_o invention_n nor_o add_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n more_o than_o they_o have_v receive_v &_o learn_v of_o god_n who_o be_v the_o author_n of_o all_o goodness_n although_o moses_n do_v more_o precise_o distinguish_v &_o certain_o order_v the_o sort_n the_o kind_n &_o difference_n betwixt_o sacrifice_n and_o sacrifice_n and_o yet_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v that_o do_v he_o at_o the_o lord_n appointment_n god_n instruct_v moses_n in_o all_o that_o he_o do_v for_o the_o book_n of_o leviticus_fw-la wherein_o be_v especial_o describe_v all_o the_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n do_v immediate_o after_o the_o very_a beginning_n testify_v that_o moses_n be_v call_v by_o god_n and_o that_o he_o learn_v of_o the_o lord_n all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o he_o command_v the_o israelite_n to_o keep_v and_o in_o the_o 7_o chap._n of_o y_fw-es book_n of_o numb_a we_o read_v and_o when_o moses_n come_v into_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o appointment_n he_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o god_n speak_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o the_o mercy_n seat_n now_o as_o i_o be_v about_o to_o say_v there_o be_v diverse_a sacrifice_n sundry_o peculiar_a differ_v in_o many_o point_n among_o themselves_o &_o yet_o have_v many_o thing_n common_a &_o general_a one_o with_o another_o it_o be_v general_a to_o all_o sacrifice_n not_o to_o be_v offer_v in_o any_o other_o but_o one_o appoint_v place_n alone_o it_o be_v general_a to_o all_o sacrifice_n that_o they_o ought_v of_o duty_n to_o be_v offer_v by_o faith_n according_a as_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o y_fw-es word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v general_a to_o all_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v make_v according_a to_o the_o lords_z commandment_n with_o holy_a fire_n &_o not_o with_o strange_a fire_n or_o fire_n profane_o kindle_v nadab_n &_o abihu_n the_o son_n of_o aaron_n be_v slay_v for_o nothing_o else_o but_o for_o because_o they_o use_v profane_a or_o strange_a fire_n in_o sacrifice_v to_o the_o lord_n for_o when_o the_o israelite_n or_o levite_n do_v first_o of_o all_o sacrifice_n as_o the_o lord_n have_v command_v they_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n of_o appointment_n than_o do_v god_n by_o send_v fire_n from_o heaven_n give_v a_o token_n that_o he_o do_v like_a of_o that_o manner_n of_o sacrifice_n whereupon_o in_o the_o six_o of_o leviticus_fw-la the_o priest_n be_v charge_v vesta_n to_o maintain_v or_o keep_v the_o holy_a fire_n always_o burn_v first_o in_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o then_o in_o the_o temple_n which_o thing_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o heathen_a do_v imitate_v in_o command_v the_o vestal_a virgin_n at_o rome_n always_o to_o keep_v the_o holy_a fire_n burn_v by_o this_o perpetual_a fire_n be_v mean_v the_o perpetual_a work_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o must_v be_v keep_v quick_a &_o stir_v up_o in_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a with_o fervent_a prayer_n with_o the_o sincere_a doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n &_o with_o the_o right_a use_n of_o his_o holy_a sacrament_n it_o be_v also_o general_a to_o all_o sacrifice_n that_o in_o they_o neither_o wild_a nor_o unclean_a beast_n be_v offer_v to_o you_o lord_n moreover_o this_o general_a rule_n of_o sacrifice_n be_v give_v by_o moses_n in_o the_o 22._o chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la say_v let_v no_o deformity_n be_v in_o the_o thing_n that_o thou_o shall_v offer_v if_o it_o be_v blind_a or_o lame_a or_o maim_v if_o it_o have_v push_n or_o scab_n or_o tettar_n you_o shall_v not_o offer_v it_o unto_o the_o lord_n neither_o shall_v you_o put_v aught_o of_o it_o upon_o his_o altar_n very_o if_o any_o man_n have_v bring_v a_o deform_a oblation_n unto_o the_o lord_n he_o show_v himself_o plain_o to_o be_v a_o contemner_n &_o utter_o unthankful_a towards_o his_o maker_n and_o therefore_o the_o lord_n in_o malachi_n cry_v out_o and_o say_v when_o you_o bring_v the_o blind_a for_o sacrifice_n do_v you_o not_o sin_n and_o when_o you_o bring_v the_o lame_a and_o sick_a do_v you_o not_o sin_n offer_v it_o now_o i_o pray_v thou_o to_o thy_o prince_n or_o captain_n will_v he_o be_v content_a with_o it_o or_o will_v he_o accept_v thy_o person_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n and_o so_o i_o say_v my_o name_n be_v in_o contempt_n &_o of_o no_o estimation_n among_o you_o the_o just_a and_o true_a god_n therefore_o do_v at_o all_o time_n require_v truth_n liberality_n sincerity_n and_o integrity_n in_o they_o that_o worship_v he_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o abhor_v and_o utter_o detest_v uncleanness_n lie_v and_o hypocrisy_n there_o be_v certain_a other_o thing_n also_o which_o be_v general_o common_a to_o all_o sort_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o i_o will_v not_o at_o this_o time_n make_v particular_a rehearsal_n of_o every_o several_a jot_n or_o minute_n but_o what_o peculiarity_n every_o sundry_a sacrifice_n have_v it_o will_v evident_o appear_v in_o the_o exposition_n of_o their_o sundry_a sort_n which_o i_o will_v now_o speak_v of_o in_o order_n as_o they_o lie_v first_o of_o all_o i_o will_v expound_v to_o you_o that_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n which_o in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d scripture_n be_v call_v holocaustum_fw-la that_o sacrifice_n be_v whole_o consume_v with_o fire_n so_o that_o nothing_o but_o the_o skin_n or_o hide_v of_o the_o beast_n be_v leave_v for_o the_o priest_n the_o word_n be_v derive_v of_o the_o greek_a for_o it_o be_v call_v holocaustum_fw-la as_o one_o shall_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v whole_o burn_v or_o consume_v with_o fire_n this_o sacrifice_n be_v of_o three_o kind_n i_o mean_v it_o be_v make_v after_o three_o sort_n to_o wit_v with_o great_a with_o little_a and_o with_o less_o live_a creature_n namely_o with_o a_o ox_n a_o bullock_n or_o a_o calf_n or_o if_o any_o man_n ability_n be_v not_o sufficient_a
and_o in_o as_o natural_a and_o plain_a a_o order_n as_o possible_o can_v be_v of_o the_o holy_a building_n of_o the_o not_o make_v away_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o thing_n be_v consecrate_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o final_o of_o the_o maintain_n and_o publish_v of_o true_a religion_n there_o be_v large_a speech_n every_o where_o throughout_o the_o whole_a scripture_n neither_o do_v i_o think_v it_o to_o be_v great_o to_o the_o purpose_n word_n by_o word_n to_o recite_v all_o the_o law_n nor_o particular_o to_o make_v mention_v of_o all_o the_o commandment_n touch_v those_o matter_n very_o of_o the_o heathen_a and_o of_o the_o overthrow_v of_o their_o temple_n and_o superstitious_a holy_a toy_n this_o commandment_n be_v brief_o give_v by_o the_o lord_n himself_o when_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v cast_v out_o many_o nation_n before_o thou_o thou_o shall_v root_v they_o out_o neither_o shall_v thou_o make_v league_n with_o they_o nor_o pity_v they_o nor_o join_v affinity_n with_o they_o because_o they_o will_v seduce_v thy_o son_n to_o serve_v strange_a god_n and_o so_o my_o fury_n wax_v hot_a against_o thou_o and_o i_o destroy_v thou_o but_o this_o shall_v thou_o do_v to_o they_o you_o shall_v dig_v down_o their_o altar_n you_o shall_v break_v their_o idol_n you_o shall_v cut_v down_o their_o grove_n and_o burn_v their_o image_n with_o fire_n for_o a_o holy_a people_n be_v thou_o unto_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n &_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n have_v choose_v thou_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o himself_o the_o same_o law_n be_v set_v down_o in_o the_o idolatry_n 23_o of_o exodus_fw-la and_o be_v again_o repeat_v in_o the_o twelve_o of_o deuteron_n hereunto_o belong_v the_o law_n that_o be_v publish_v against_o idol_n and_o image_n in_o the_o ninetéenth_n of_o leviticus_fw-la the_o lord_n say_v look_v not_o back_o to_o idol_n neither_o make_v you_o moult_a gods._n i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god._n also_o in_o the_o 26_o chapter_n you_o shall_v make_v you_o no_o idol_n nor_o grave_a image_n neither_o rear_v you_o up_o any_o pillar_n neither_o shall_v you_o set_v you_o up_o any_o image_n of_o stone_n in_o your_o land_n to_o bow_v down_o unto_o it_o for_o i_o be_o the_o lord_n your_o god._n again_o in_o the_o 16_o of_o deuteronomie_n thou_o shall_v plant_v no_o grove_n of_o any_o tree_n nigh_o unto_o the_o altar_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n neither_o shall_v thou_o set_v thou_o up_o any_o image_n which_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n hate_v there_o be_v beside_o these_o also_o many_o other_o law_n to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n in_o every_o place_n through_o all_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o the_o well_o handle_v and_o entreat_v poor_a of_o the_o poor_a of_o widow_n of_o orphan_n and_o stranger_n the_o lord_n give_v this_o commandment_n you_o shall_v not_o afflict_v the_o widow_n nor_o the_o fatherless_a but_o if_o you_o go_v on_o to_o afflict_v they_o without_o doubt_n they_o shall_v cry_v to_o i_o and_o i_o will_v assure_o hear_v they_o and_o will_v be_v angry_a with_o you_o and_o will_v slay_v you_o with_o the_o sword_n and_o your_o wife_n shall_v be_v widow_n and_o your_o child_n fatherless_a to_o this_o belong_v a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o fifteen_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n in_o the_o 24_o chapter_n the_o lord_n say_v do_v not_o pervert_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o stranger_n of_o the_o fatherless_a and_o of_o the_o widow_n remember_v rhat_o thou_o be_v a_o stranger_n in_o the_o land_n of_o egypt_n of_o the_o receive_n and_o refuse_v of_o ●●●rings_n witness_n and_o their_o witness_n bearing_n in_o judgement_n these_o few_o note_n be_v give_v in_o the_o law_n one_o witness_n shall_v not_o be_v of_o force_n against_o a_o man_n whatsoever_o his_o sin_n or_o offence_n shall_v be_v but_o in_o the_o mouth_n of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n shall_v every_o word_n be_v establish_v if_o a_o false_a witness_n rise_v up_o against_o a_o man_n to_o accuse_v he_o of_o trespass_n the_o judge_n shall_v make_v diligent_a inquisition_n and_o if_o they_o find_v that_o the_o witness_n have_v bear_v false_a witness_n against_o his_o brother_n then_o shall_v they_o do_v to_o he_o as_o he_o have_v think_v to_o have_v do_v to_o his_o brother_n &_o thou_o shall_v put_v evil_a away_o from_o out_o of_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o now_o for_o the_o oath_n which_o the_o judge_n have_v to_o exact_v or_o they_o that_o be_v at_o variance_n or_o else_o the_o witness_n have_v to_o take_v that_o do_v the_o lord_n command_v to_o be_v do_v by_o the_o call_n to_o record_n of_o his_o holy_a name_n and_o that_o too_o of_o none_o other_o but_o his_o name_n alone_o deuteron_fw-gr 10_o etc_n etc_n moreover_o that_o in_o effect_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o appeal_n where_o moses_n do_v so_o often_o 〈…〉_o bid_v the_o judge_n in_o a_o hard_a and_o doubtful_a matter_n to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o so_o as_o it_o be_v to_o god_n himself_o or_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o same_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o eyghtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o exodus_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o and_o sixtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n of_o lawful_a wedlock_n against_o incestuous_a and_o unprofitable_a marriage_n 〈◊〉_d and_o also_o of_o the_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n there_o be_v exquisite_a precept_n as_o well_o in_o the_o eyghtéenth_fw-mi chapter_n of_o leviticus_fw-la as_o also_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o book_n of_o moses_n very_o where_o lawful_a marriage_n be_v not_o there_o be_v no_o matrimony_n therefore_o the_o child_n that_o be_v so_o bear_v be_v count_v bastard_n neither_o be_v there_o for_o they_o any_o dowry_n or_o inheritance_n the_o lord_n in_o many_o place_n of_o his_o law_n do_v charge_n parent_n to_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n honest_o and_o to_o instruct_v child_n they_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n among_o the_o rest_n he_o say_v the_o word_n which_o i_o command_v thou_o this_o day_n thou_o shall_v show_v unto_o thy_o child_n and_o shall_v talk_v of_o they_o when_o thou_o be_v at_o home_n in_o thine_o house_n and_o as_o thou_o walk_v by_o the_o way_n and_o when_o thou_o lie_v down_o and_o when_o thou_o rise_v up_o and_o thou_o shall_v bind_v they_o for_o a_o sign_n upon_o thine_o hand_n &_o they_o shall_v be_v as_o frontlet_n betwixt_o thine_o eye_n and_o thou_o shall_v write_v they_o upon_o the_o post_n of_o thine_o house_n and_o upon_o thy_o gate_n etc_n etc_n again_o for_o the_o honour_v reverence_v and_o nourish_v of_o parent_n there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o moral_a only_o but_o also_o in_o the_o judicial_a law_n some_o thing_n set_v down_o wherein_o the_o honour_n and_o duty_n to_o be_v give_v to_o parent_n be_v diligent_o commend_v to_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n of_o which_o i_o will_v speak_v when_o i_o come_v to_o treat_v of_o parricidie_n under_o which_o title_n i_o do_v comprehend_v the_o evil_a handle_n and_o naughty_a demeanour_n of_o man_n to_o their_o parent_n now_o how_o great_a the_o authority_n of_o father_n over_o their_o child_n be_v father_n we_o may_v conjecture_v by_o that_o especial_o where_o in_o the_o 21_o of_o exod._n it_o be_v permit_v to_o the_o father_n that_o be_v in_o poverty_n to_o sell_v his_o daughter_n again_o in_o a_o other_o place_n leave_n be_v give_v to_o the_o father_n either_o to_o deny_v or_o else_o to_o give_v his_o deflower_v daughter_n in_o marriage_n to_o he_o that_o do_v defile_v she_o and_o again_o it_o be_v in_o the_o father_n power_n to_o break_v the_o vow_n which_o the_o child_n have_v make_v without_o his_o knowledge_n or_o consent_n numerie_n 30._o but_o that_o to_o disinherit_v the_o disinherit_n child_n if_o the_o child_n have_v not_o deserve_v it_o but_o that_o some_o corrupt_a affection_n have_v blind_v the_o parent_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o power_n or_o will_v of_o the_o parent_n that_o law_n do_v show_v which_o be_v publish_v in_o the_o twenty_o one_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n and_o do_v forbid_v the_o father_n to_o place_v the_o second_o in_o the_o right_n of_o his_o elder_a or_o first_o beget_v son_n concern_v the_o come_n to_o inheritance_n inheritance_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o good_n or_o the_o lawful_a succession_n by_o kindred_n there_o be_v a_o precise_a law_n in_o the_o 27_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o number_n there_o be_v set_v down_o the_o case_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o zelphad_n who_o do_v request_n that_o their_o father_n name_n shall_v not_o be_v wipe_v out_o but_o that_o their_o father_n inheritance_n and_o name_n may_v be_v give_v unto_o and_o still_o remain_v with_o they_o upon_o that_o occasion_n be_v the_o law_n make_v that_o if_o the_o son_n do_v die_v the_o heritage_n shall_v
the_o honour_n due_a to_o parent_n the_o 5_o lord_n himself_o do_v ratify_v in_o the_o 15._o cap._n of_o matthews_n gospel_n even_o as_o he_o do_v also_o very_o diligent_o teach_v the_o six_o against_o 6_o murder_n &_o the_o seven_o against_o 7_o adultery_n in_o the_o 5._o cap._n of_o y_fw-es same_o gospel_n the_o eight_o which_o be_v against_o theft_n be_v 8_o renew_a by_o the_o apostle_n who_o give_v charge_n that_o no_o man_n deceive_v his_o brother_n and_o that_o no_o man_n steal_v any_o more_o but_o that_o every_o one_o shall_v labour_v with_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o may_v have_v thing_n necessary_a for_o himself_o and_o be_v able_a to_o give_v to_o he_o that_o want_v the_o nine_n precept_n which_o be_v for_o the_o bridle_a of_o 9_o the_o tongue_n so_o that_o no_o lie_n be_v make_v nor_o false_a witness_n bear_v against_o our_o neighbour_n be_v by_o christ_n himself_o and_o his_o apostle_n confirm_v so_o often_o as_o they_o give_v rule_n for_o the_o order_n of_o the_o tongue_n and_o charge_v every_o man_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n to_o his_o neighbour_n and_o they_o also_o do_v condemn_v evil_a lust_n and_o affection_n whereby_o they_o do_v not_o abrogate_v but_o 10_o repair_v the_o ten_o commandment_n which_o do_v forbid_v all_o manner_n of_o concupiscence_n therefore_o the_o whole_a abrogation_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o they_o be_v abrogate_a do_v consist_v in_o those_o point_n whereof_o i_o speak_v even_o now_o to_o wit_n that_o christ_n in_o faith_n be_v our_o perfect_v &_o absolute_a righteousness_n etc_n etc_n the_o apostle_n bear_v witness_n thereunto_o and_o say_v what_o the_o law_n can_v not_o do_v in_o as_o much_o as_o it_o be_v weak_a through_o the_o flesh_n god_n have_v send_v his_o own_o son_n in_o the_o similitude_n of_o sinful_a flesh_n even_o by_o sin_n condemn_v sin_n in_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v fulfil_v in_o we_o which_o walk_v not_o after_o the_o flesh_n but_o after_o the_o spirit_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 8._o to_o the_o roman_n i_o have_v therefore_o discourse_v the_o brieflier_n of_o this_o matter_n in_o this_o place_n because_o i_o have_v at_o the_o full_a speak_v of_o it_o in_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n i_o be_o now_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o the_o ceremonial_n these_o ceremonial_n be_v give_v and_o grant_v until_o the_o abrogate_a time_n of_o amendment_n to_o wit_n until_o messiah_n shall_v come_v messiah_n be_v already_o come_v therefore_o all_o the_o ceremony_n even_o to_o the_o come_n death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n into_o the_o heaven_n be_v come_v to_o a_o end_n and_o have_v no_o place_n any_o long_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o christian_n and_o yet_o here_o we_o must_v and_o do_v make_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o write_n concern_v the_o ceremony_n and_o the_o very_a thing_n of_o the_o ceremony_n that_o be_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n i_o mean_v the_o very_a ceremony_n themselves_o or_o action_n in_o be_v use_v for_o the_o write_n concern_v the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v set_v forth_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v not_o take_v away_o from_o christian_n nor_o abrogate_a so_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v read_v retain_v or_o use_v in_o the_o church_n as_o i_o declare_v in_o the_o 2._o sermon_n of_o the_o first_o decade_n for_o they_o be_v effectual_a to_o instruct_v we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n while_o in_o they_o we_o do_v behold_v the_o manner_n how_o christ_n be_v preach_v and_o prefigure_v to_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n paul_n very_o do_v most_o significant_o preach_v christ_n out_o of_o the_o ceremony_n which_o no_o man_n will_v deny_v that_o read_v diligent_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n for_o he_o do_v wonderful_o in_o that_o epistle_n lay_v christ_n and_o all_o his_o gift_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o church_n therefore_o the_o ceremonial_n both_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n so_o yet_o that_o in_o they_o christ_n may_v be_v seek_v and_o when_o he_o be_v find_v be_v apt_o preach_v and_o for_o that_o cause_n in_o the_o 5._o &_o 6._o sermon_n of_o this_o decade_n where_o i_o handle_v the_o ceremonial_n i_o annered_a unto_o they_o certain_a note_n of_o their_o signification_n that_o i_o may_v open_v away_o for_o the_o student_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o lover_n of_o christ_n to_o go_v forward_o &_o proceed_v in_o that_o hind_n of_o argument_n now_o the_o ceremonial_a thing_n or_o stuff_n of_o the_o ceremony_n of_o which_o sort_n be_v the_o priesthood_n the_o place_n the_o time_n the_o sacrifice_n &_o whatsoever_o else_o be_v like_a to_o these_o be_v utter_o abrogate_a so_o in_o henceforth_o they_o be_v neither_o use_v nor_o have_v any_o place_n in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n this_o do_v jeremy_n foretell_v in_o the_o 3._o chap._n of_o his_o prophecy_n say_v in_o those_o day_n they_o shall_v make_v no_o more_o boast_n of_o the_o ark_n of_o the_o lord_n covenant_n no_o man_n shall_v think_v upon_o it_o neither_o shall_v any_o man_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o for_o from_o thenceforth_o it_o shall_v neither_o be_v visit_v neither_o shall_v such_o thing_n be_v do_v any_o more_o by_o the_o ark_n the_o prophet_n mean_v those_o point_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v abolish_v by_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrew_n by_o the_o promise_n that_o god_o make_v to_o jeremy_n say_v that_o he_o will_v make_v a_o new_a covenant_n do_v 1_n gather_v this_o observation_n in_o that_o he_o say_v a_o new_a covenant_n he_o have_v wear_v out_o the_o first_o for_o that_o which_o be_v wear_v out_o and_o wax_v old_a be_v ready_a to_o vanish_v away_o the_o same_o apostle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n say_v christ_n be_v our_o peace_n which_o have_v make_v both_o one_o and_o have_v break_v down_o the_o middle_a wall_n that_o be_v a_o stop_n between_o we_o take_v away_o in_o his_o flesh_n the_o hatred_n even_o the_o law_n of_o commandment_n contain_v in_o ordinance_n for_o to_o make_v of_o twain_o one_o new_a man_n in_o himself_o so_o make_v peace_n ephes_n 2._o god_n very_o sever_v the_o jew_n from_o the_o gentile_n while_o he_o choose_v and_o consecrate_v they_o to_o be_v a_o peculiar_a people_n unto_o himself_o not_o by_o the_o call_n of_o the_o word_n only_o but_o also_o by_o the_o sacrament_n for_o there_o be_v ceremony_n prescribe_v and_o give_v which_o as_o a_o middle_a wall_n betwixt_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_n shall_v compass_v in_o and_o contain_v the_o heritage_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o in_o the_o ceremony_n the_o note_n of_o difference_n do_v consist_v whereby_o the_o jew_n be_v know_v to_o be_v the_o lawful_a heir_n of_o god_n good_a promise_n whereof_o the_o gentile_n have_v no_o part_n or_o portion_n but_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o of_o two_o people_n the_o jew_n &_o the_o gentile_n he_o may_v make_v one_o church_n and_o therefore_o do_v he_o break_v down_o the_o middle_a wall_n that_o part_v they_o that_o be_v patition_n he_o do_v clean_o take_v away_o the_o ceremonial_a ordinance_n which_o be_v a_o stop_n betwixt_o they_o for_o christ_n in_o that_o case_n do_v the_o same_o that_o prince_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v who_o when_o they_o go_v about_o to_o bring_v two_o nation_n that_o be_v at_o variance_n into_o one_o kingdom_n and_o under_o one_o authority_n do_v first_o take_v away_o the_o diversity_n of_o arm_n which_o be_v the_o cognizaunce_n of_o their_o ancient_a hatred_n that_o when_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o remembrance_n of_o the_o grudge_n be_v take_v from_o their_o eye_n they_o may_v the_o better_o agree_v betwixt_o themselves_o in_o mind_n and_o behaviour_n for_o even_o so_o do_v christ_n take_v away_o circumcision_n the_o sacrifice_n and_o all_o the_o ceremony_n to_o the_o end_n that_o of_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n he_o may_v make_v one_o church_n and_o fellowship_n paul_n to_o the_o colossian_n compare_v the_o ceremony_n to_o a_o obligation_n write_v or_o handwriting_n whereby_o god_n have_v we_o bind_v as_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v deny_v the_o guilt_n but_o he_o say_v that_o we_o be_v so_o deliver_v by_o christ_n from_o the_o guilt_n that_o the_o obligation_n or_o handwriting_n be_v cancel_v or_o tear_v in_o piece_n but_o by_o the_o cancel_v of_o the_o handwriting_n the_o debtor_n be_v acquiet_v &_o set_v at_o liberty_n and_o therefore_o we_o read_v that_o at_o the_o death_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o veil_n of_o the_o temple_n be_v tear_v in_o piece_n from_o the_o bottom_n up_o to_o the_o very_a top_n that_o thereby_o all_o people_n may_v understand_v both_o that_o sin_n
be_v then_o forgive_v they_o &_o that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n be_v set_v at_o liberty_n from_o all_o the_o burden_n and_o yoke_n of_o the_o law_n very_o when_o the_o wicked_a stiffnecked_a and_o disloyal_a destroy_v people_n of_o the_o jew_n do_v after_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n go_v on_o to_o exercise_v prorogue_v and_o to_o obtrude_v to_o all_o man_n the_o ceremony_n which_o be_v finish_v and_o abrogate_a at_o the_o come_n of_o messiah_n than_o christ_n sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n do_v by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o roman_a prince_n utter_o deface_v their_o city_n and_o overthrow_v the_o temple_n wherein_o they_o boast_v which_o thing_n the_o prophet_n daniel_n and_o balaam_n many_o hundred_o 24._o year_n before_o daniels_n time_n foretell_v and_o say_v shall_v come_v to_o pass_v neither_o hitherto_o yet_o by_o the_o space_n of_o 1500._o year_n and_o more_o have_v they_o have_v any_o place_n to_o restore_v and_o set_v up_o again_o their_o city_n and_o temple_n in_o theodoretus_n and_o ruffinus_n we_o read_v that_o in_o the_o reign_n of_o juhan_n the_o emperor_n the_o jew_n with_o very_a great_a hope_n and_o presumption_n go_v about_o to_o build_v a_o new_a temple_n and_o that_o they_o seek_v the_o foundation_n thereof_o in_o the_o place_n where_o that_o temple_n stand_v which_o be_v burn_v by_o titus_n son_n and_o general_a to_o the_o emperor_n vespasian_n but_o christ_n our_o lord_n who_o in_o the_o gospel_n foretell_v out_o of_o daniels_n prophesy_v the_o desolation_n thereof_o and_o do_v among_o other_o speech_n say_v and_o jerusalem_n shall_v be_v tread_v under_o foot_n of_o the_o gentile_n till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v fulfil_v do_v mighty_o repress_v their_o wicked_a endeavour_n &_o hinder_v their_o labour_n for_o go_v forward_o for_o when_o they_o have_v gather_v &_o bring_v together_o many_o thousand_o bushel_n of_o lime_n and_o chaulk_v then_o sudden_o come_v a_o whirlwind_n w_o a_o wonderful_a storm_n and_o bluster_a which_o scatter_v abroad_o and_o carry_v away_o the_o store_n of_o stuff_n by_o they_o provide_v there_o happen_v also_o a_o terrible_a earthquake_n by_o which_o all_o the_o building_n almost_o of_o the_o whole_a place_n be_v sweep_v away_o &_o make_v even_o with_o the_o ground_n final_o when_o a_o great_a company_n which_o be_v busy_a in_o the_o work_n do_v the_o same_o night_n remain_v or_o take_v their_o rest_n in_o a_o certain_a porch_n or_o gallery_n near_o to_o the_o new_a begin_v city_n &_o temple_n the_o whole_a building_n and_o roof_n thereof_o fall_v down_o on_o a_o sudden_a slay_v all_o the_o number_n that_o be_v within_o a'n_z reach_v thereof_o in_o the_o morning_n they_o which_o remain_v alive_a run_v together_o to_o seek_v every_o man_n for_o his_o friend_n among_o they_o that_o be_v slay_v by_o the_o ruinous_a building_n and_o when_o those_o terror_n can_v do_v no_o good_a nor_o turn_v they_o from_o their_o purpose_n then_o sudden_o out_o of_o the_o trench_n foundation_n and_o stoarchouse_n hard_a by_o where_o their_o tool_n and_o other_o necessary_n lay_v there_o spring_v forth_o a_o fearful_a fire_n which_o burn_v many_o that_o urge_v the_o work_n and_o compel_v the_o rest_n to_o take_v their_o heel_n for_o in_o that_o one_o day_n it_o break_v forth_o sundry_a time_n and_o so_o at_o last_o repress_v the_o stubborn_a rashness_n of_o that_o stiffnecked_a people_n and_o for_o because_o these_o thing_n shall_v not_o be_v think_v to_o have_v happen_v casual_o or_o at_o adventure_n the_o night_n before_o and_o a'n_z night_n follow_v there_o appear_v in_o the_o sky_n a_o bright_a or_o glister_a sign_n of_o the_o cross_n &_o the_o garment_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v fill_v over_o w_o cross_n not_o bright_a but_o black_a which_o can_v not_o be_v ride_v away_o or_o wipe_v out_o by_o any_o pain_n take_v or_o manner_n of_o mean_n they_o therefore_o in_o spite_n of_o their_o tooth_n and_o full_a sore_n against_o their_o will_n be_v compel_v with_o those_o horrible_a terror_n fearful_a judgement_n and_o bitter_a plague_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n forsake_v the_o place_n and_o flee_v every_o man_n to_o his_o house_n leave_v the_o work_n undo_v and_o open_o confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n who_o their_o forefather_n have_v crucify_v be_v a_o most_o mighty_a god_n howsoever_o julian_n with_o pharaoh_n and_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o jew_n do_v perseaver_n still_o in_o their_o disloyalty_n and_o despiteful_a blasphemy_n against_o he_o and_o his_o holy_a church_n but_o howsoever_o the_o jew_n do_v even_o at_o this_o day_n abide_v in_o their_o wilful_a stubbornness_n the_o lord_n do_v from_o heaven_n declare_v open_o enough_o that_o he_o be_v no_o long_o delight_v with_o the_o ceremonial_a rite_n because_o he_o destroy_v all_o the_o instrument_n belong_v to_o that_o ancient_a kind_n of_o worship_n and_o make_v the_o very_a shop_n of_o that_o old_a religion_n i_o mean_v the_o temple_n and_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n level_v with_o the_o ground_n touch_v the_o temple_n the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n when_o they_o with_o wonder_v do_v behold_v it_o and_o say_v do_v you_o not_o see_v all_o these_o thing_n very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o there_o shall_v not_o be_v leave_v here_o one_o stone_n stand_v upon_o a_o other_o and_o again_o weep_v over_o the_o unthankful_a city_n he_o say_v they_o shall_v not_o leave_v in_o thou_o one_o stone_n stand_v upon_o a_o other_o because_o thou_o know_v not_o the_o time_n of_o thy_o visitation_n and_o now_o that_o all_o this_o be_v word_n for_o word_n accomplish_v and_o full_o finish_v josephus_n a_o eye_n witness_n of_o the_o same_o do_v large_o testify_v in_o the_o 18._o chap._n of_o his_o 7._o book_n de_fw-fr bello_fw-la judaico_fw-la even_o very_o now_o i_o tell_v you_o that_o from_o one_o thousand_o and_o five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o unto_o this_o present_a time_n the_o jew_n never_o have_v any_o place_n give_v they_o to_o build_v their_o temple_n up_o in_o again_o whereby_o if_o they_o be_v not_o beside_o themselves_o they_o may_v easy_o gather_v that_o the_o messiah_n be_v already_o come_v into_o the_o world_n and_o that_o he_o have_v abrogate_a all_o the_o ceremonial_a rite_n it_o be_v a_o very_a slender_a or_o rather_o no_o defence_n at_o all_o for_o the_o jew_n to_o allege_v 〈◊〉_d the_o word_n in_o the_o law_n which_o be_v many_o time_n rehearse_v where_o the_o ceremony_n be_v describe_v you_o shall_v keep_v it_o for_o a_o everlasting_a ordinance_n for_o in_o this_o sense_n everlasting_a be_v take_v for_o longlasting_a and_o unchangeable_a so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o have_v respect_n unto_o the_o will_n or_o authority_n of_o mankind_n for_o the_o lord_n do_v with_o threaten_v of_o grievous_a punishment_n forbid_v that_o mankind_n unadvisedness_n shall_v change_v or_o abrogate_v the_o holy_a ceremony_n and_o yet_o since_o he_o do_v ordain_v those_o ceremony_n until_o the_o time_n of_o amendment_n he_o do_v neither_o sin_n nor_o yet_o incur_v the_o crime_n of_o unconstancy_n when_o he_o do_v change_v or_o take_v away_o the_o ceremony_n according_a to_o the_o determinate_a purpose_n which_o he_o intend_v from_o the_o beginning_n moreover_o so_o long_o as_o the_o thing_n signify_v do_v not_o decay_n and_o that_o the_o shadow_n only_o or_o momentany_a figure_n do_v vanish_v away_o it_o be_v assure_o certain_a that_o the_o ceremony_n do_v yet_o remain_v in_o full_a effect_n and_o substance_n the_o whole_a man_n do_v live_v for_o ever_o and_o yet_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v temporal_a or_o corruptible_a in_o he_o do_v perish_v in_o death_n and_o be_v abolish_v in_o his_o clarification_n but_o that_o all_o these_o thing_n may_v appear_v abrogate_a as_o clear_a as_o the_o day_n light_n i_o will_v particular_o run_v through_o and_o touch_v the_o more_o notable_a sort_n of_o ceremony_n that_o the_o priesthood_n of_o aaron_n be_v utter_o abrogate_a it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o word_n which_o the_o apostle_n cite_v out_o of_o david_n say_v the_o lord_n have_v swear_v and_o will_v not_o repent_v thou_o be_v a_o priest_n for_o ever_o after_o the_o order_n of_o melchisedech_n christ_n therefore_o be_v the_o one_o and_o only_o high_a priest_n and_o that_o too_o a_o everlasting_a priest_n have_v a_o immutable_a priesthood_n which_o can_v by_o succession_n pass_v from_o he_o to_o any_o other_o man_n or_o angel._n for_o he_o now_o stand_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n in_o heaven_n the_o very_a true_a temple_n which_o be_v prefigure_v by_o the_o tabernacle_n and_o temple_n at_o jerusalem_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o we_o &_o do_v all_o the_o office_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n of_o who_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n s._n paul_n do_v speak_v very_o large_o in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o the_o hebrew_n this_o christ_n jesus_n our_o high_a
consequent_o to_o every_o sign_n his_o several_a limin_n s._n augustine_n in_o opusculo_fw-la saint_n 2._o quaestionum_fw-la quist_n 45._o confute_v sound_o the_o destiny_n of_o planet_n among_o other_o his_o reason_n say_v the_o conceive_n of_o twin_n in_o the_o mother_n womb_n because_o it_o be_v make_v 〈…〉_o in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o act_n as_o the_o physician_n testify_v who_o discipline_n be_v far_o more_o certain_a and_o manifest_a than_o that_o of_o the_o astrologer_n do_v happen_v in_o so_o small_a a_o moment_n of_o time_n tha●_z there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o time_n as_o two_o minute_n of_o a_o minute_n betwixt_o the_o conceive_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o how_o therefore_o come_v it_o that_o in_o twin_n of_o one_o burden_n there_o be_v so_o great_a a_o diversity_n of_o de●des_n will_n and_o chance_n consider_v that_o they_o of_o necessity_n must_v need_v have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o planet_n in_o their_o conception_n and_o that_o the_o mathematicals_n do_v give_v the_o constellation_n of_o they_o both_o as_o if_o it_o be_v but_o of_o one_o man_n to_o these_o word_n of_o s._n augustine_n great_a light_n may_v be_v add_v if_o you_o annex_v to_o they_o and_o examine_v narrow_o the_o example_n of_o esau_n and_o jacob_n birth_n and_o sundry_a disposition_n the_o same_o augustine_n write_v to_o boniface_n against_o two_o epistle_n of_o the_o pelagian_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o say_v they_o which_o affirm_v that_o destiny_n do_v rule_v will_v have_v not_o only_o our_o deed_n and_o event_n but_o also_o our_o very_a will_n to_o depend_v upon_o the_o place_v of_o the_o star_n at_o the_o time_n wherein_o every_o man_n be_v either_o conceive_v or_o bear_v which_o placeing_n they_o be_v wont_a to_o call_v constellation_n but_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n do_v not_o only_o go_v above_o all_o star_n and_o heaven_n but_o also_o above_o the_o very_a angel_n themselves_o moreover_o these_o disputer_n for_o destiny_n do_v attribute_n to_o destiny_n both_o the_o good_a and_o evil_a that_o happen_v to_o man_n but_o god_n in_o the_o evil_n that_o fall_v upon_o man_n do_v due_o and_o worthy_o recompense_v they_o for_o their_o ill_a desert_n but_o the_o good_a which_o they_o have_v he_o do_v bestow_v upon_o they_o not_o for_o their_o merit_n but_o of_o his_o own_o favour_n &_o merciful_a goodness_n through_o grace_n that_o can_v be_v look_v for_o of_o duty_n lay_v both_o good_a and_o evil_a upon_o we_o man_n not_o through_o the_o temporal_a course_n of_o planet_n but_o by_o the_o deep_a and_o eternal_a counsel_n of_o his_o severity_n and_o goodness_n so_o then_o we_o see_v that_o neither_o the_o fall_n out_o of_o good_a or_o evil_n have_v any_o relation_n unto_o y_fw-es planet_n therefore_o this_o place_n may_v be_v conclude_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o prophet_n jeremy_n say_v thus_o say_v the_o lord_n you_o shall_v not_o learn_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o heathen_a and_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v atraide_v for_o the_o token_n of_o heaven_n for_o the_o heathen_a be_v afraid_a of_o such_o yea_o all_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o gentile_n be_v vanity_n for_o the_o planet_n have_v no_o force_n to_o do_v either_o good_a or_o evil_n and_o therefore_o the_o blame_n of_o sin_n be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v thereunto_o i_o have_v now_o to_o prove_v unto_o you_o that_o 〈…〉_o god_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o sin_n or_o the_o author_n of_o evil_a god_n say_v they_o will_v have_v it_o so_o for_o if_o he_o will_v not_o have_v have_v it_o so_o i_o have_v not_o sin_v for_o who_o may_v resist_v his_o power_n again_o since_o he_o can_v have_v let_v it_o and_o will_v not_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n as_o though_o we_o know_v not_o the_o crafty_a quarrel_n and_o subtle_a shift_n of_o mortal_a man_n wh●_z i_o pray_v you_o know_v not_o that_o god_n do_v not_o deal_v with_o we_o by_o his_o absolute_a power_n but_o by_o a_o appoint_a law_n and_o ordinance_n i_o mean_v by_o commodious_a mean_n &_o a_o probable_a order_n god_n can_v i_o know_v by_o his_o absolute_a power_n keep_v off_o all_o evil_a but_o yet_o he_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v either_o corrupt_v or_o mar_v his_o creature_n &_o excellent_a order_n he_o deal_v with_o we_o man_n therefore_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o man_n he_o appoint_v we_o law_n and_o lay_v before_o we_o reward_n &_o punishement_n he_o command_v to_o embrace_v the_o good_a and_o eschew_v the_o evil_a to_o the_o perform_v whereof_o he_o do_v neither_o deny_v we_o his_o grace_n without_o which_o we_o can_v do_v nothing_o neither_o do_v he_o despise_v our_o diligent_a good_a will_n and_o earnest_a travail_n herein_o if_o man_n be_v slack_a the_o negligence_n and_o fault_n be_v impute_v to_o man_n himself_o and_o not_o to_o god_n although_o he_o can_v have_v keep_v off_o the_o sin_n and_o do_v not_o for_o it_o be_v not_o his_o duty_n to_o keep_v it_o off_o lest_o peradventure_o he_o shall_v disturb_v the_o order_n and_o destroy_v the_o work_n which_o he_o himself_o have_v make_v and_o ordain_v therefore_o god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n or_o naughtiness_n touch_v which_o matter_n i_o will_v first_o add_v some_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n then_o answer_v to_o sundry_a objection_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o this_o doctrine_n and_o last_o declare_v the_o original_a cause_n or_o headspring_n of_o sin_n and_o wickedness_n the_o testimony_n which_o teach_v that_o create_v god_n be_v not_o the_o author_n of_o sin_n or_o naughtiness_n be_v many_o in_o number_n but_o among_o the_o rest_n this_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o great_a force_n and_o probability_n because_o god_n be_v say_v to_o be_v good_a natural_o and_o that_o all_o which_o he_o create_v be_v make_v good_a in_o their_o creation_n whereupon_o it_o be_v that_o solomon_n say_v god_n have_v not_o make_v death_n neither_o have_v he_o delight_v in_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o live_n for_o he_o create_v all_o thing_n that_o they_o may_v have_v their_o be_v and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o world_n be_v health_n full_a &_o there_o be_v no_o poison_n of_o destruction_n in_o they_o nor_o the_o kingdom_n of_o hell_n upon_o the_o earth_n for_o righteousness_n be_v immortal_a but_o unrighteousness_n bring_v death_n and_o the_o ungodly_a call_v it_o to_o they_o both_o with_o word_n and_o work_v and_o thereby_o come_v to_o nought_o and_o so_o forth_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o wisdom_n which_o word_n do_v pass_o agree_v with_o you_o first_o chapter_n of_o that_o most_o excellent_a prophet_n moses_n in_o the_o five_o psalm_n david_n say_v thou_o be_v the_o god_n that_o have_v no_o pleasure_n in_o wickedness_n neither_o shall_v any_o evil_a dwell_v with_o thou_o the_o unjust_a shall_v not_o stand_v in_o thy_o sight_n for_o thou_o hate_v all_o they_o that_o work_n iniquity_n thou_o shall_v destroy_v they_o that_o speak_v lease_v the_o lord_n do_v abhor_v both_o the_o bloodthirsty_a &_o deceitful_a man._n lo_o thou_o can_v devise_v nothing_o more_o contrary_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n than_o sin_n &_o naughtiness_n as_o thou_o may_v more_o at_o large_a perceive_v in_o the_o 34_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o job._n the_o wiseman_n say_v god_n create_v man_n good_a but_o they_o seek_v out_o many_o invention_n of_o their_o own_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n paul_n derive_v sin_n damnation_n and_o death_n not_o from_o god_n but_o from_o adam_n and_o from_o god_n he_o fetch_v grace_n forgiveness_n &_o life_n through_o the_o mediator_n jesus_n christ_n that_o place_n of_o paul_n be_v far_o more_o manifest_a than_o that_o it_o need_v any_o large_a exposition_n let_v it_o only_o be_v consider_v and_o diligent_o weigh_v of_o the_o reader_n and_o hearer_n who_o i_o will_v wish_v always_o to_o bear_v in_o mouth_n and_o mind_n the_o very_a word_n &_o meaning_n of_o this_o notable_a sentence_n even_o as_o by_o one_o man_n sin_n enter_v into_o the_o world_n and_o death_n by_o sin_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o follow_v the_o same_o apostle_n in_o the_o seven_o to_o the_o roman_n do_v evident_o declare_v that_o the_o law_n be_v holy_a the_o commandment_n good_a and_o just_a and_o thereby_o he_o do_v insinuate_v that_o in_o god_n or_o in_o his_o will_n there_o be_v not_o and_o in_o his_o law_n which_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n there_o spring_v not_o any_o spot_n or_o blur_v of_o sin_n or_o naughtiness_n in_o our_o flesh_n say_v he_o the_o evil_a lurk_v and_o out_o of_o we_o iniquity_n arise_v i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o in_o i_o that_o be_v in_o my_o flesh_n there_o be_v no_o good_a in_o that_o chapter_n there_o be_v many_o sentence_n to_o be_v find_v which_o do_v
resist_v or_o gainsay_v they_o when_o we_o may_v the_o apostle_n paul_n forbid_v timothy_n to_o lay_v hand_n on_o any_o man_n hasty_o nor_o to_o communicate_v with_o other_o man_n sin_n therefore_o to_o give_v a_o unfit_a man_n order_n and_o to_o place_v he_o in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a ministry_n be_v that_o kind_n of_o sin_n which_o we_o do_v call_v a_o other_o sin_n for_o to_o thou_o be_v worthy_o impute_v what_o unséeméelinesse_n soever_o be_v commit_v against_o god_n &_o his_o church_n by_o the_o ignorance_n of_o the_o man_n who_o thou_o have_v so_o ordain_v they_o sin_v a_o other_o sin_n which_o offer_v violence_n and_o do_v by_o torment_n and_o threaten_n compel_v man_n to_o deny_v the_o truth_n or_o to_o commit_v some_o heinous_a offence_n for_o the_o denial_n of_o the_o truth_n be_v peccatum_fw-la alienum_fw-la a_o other_o sin_n to_o he_o which_o compel_v the_o denier_n to_o renounce_v himself_o it_o and_o therewithal_o to_o the_o same_o man_n his_o own_o sin_n in_o respect_n of_o himself_o be_v impiety_n tyranny_n sacrilege_n and_o murder_n for_o cause_v the_o other_o to_o renounce_v the_o truth_n where_o by_o the_o way_n we_o be_v well_o admonish_v that_o of_o sin_n some_o be_v wilful_a and_o some_o unwilfull_a or_o enforce_v they_o call_v that_o the_o unwillfull_a sin_n which_o be_v commit_v either_o by_o a_o other_o man_n inforce_v or_o else_o by_o our_o own_o ignorance_n therefore_o involuntarium_fw-la that_o which_o be_v do_v neither_o by_o compulsion_n nor_o by_o ignorance_n be_v conclude_v to_o be_v the_o voluntary_a or_o wilful_a sin_n again_o of_o enforce_a sin_n they_o make_v two_o sort_n whereof_o they_o call_v one_o absolute_a the_o other_o conditional_a now_o they_o think_v that_o the_o absolute_a violent_a sin_n be_v when_o it_o lie_v not_o in_o we_o either_o to_o do_v or_o not_o to_o do_v but_o when_o it_o come_v from_o some_o other_o man_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o he_o to_o who_o the_o violence_n be_v offer_v even_o as_o if_o the_o wind_n shall_v drive_v we_o to_o any_o place_n unlooked_a for_o or_o if_o the_o king_n officer_n do_v perforce_o compel_v thy_o hand_n to_o offer_v incense_n to_o idol_n while_o thou_o to_o thy_o power_n resist_v and_o do_v deny_v it_o so_o far_o as_o thou_o can_v in_o such_o a_o case_n they_o acquit_v the_o man_n so_o compel_v from_o all_o blame_n punishment_n and_o reproach_n now_o touch_v the_o second_o kind_n of_o violent_a sin_n which_o they_o call_v conditional_a they_o think_v that_o it_o rise_v upon_o sundry_a cause_n but_o that_o we_o may_v not_o stick_v to_o long_o upon_o this_o point_n we_o do_v simple_o say_v the_o unwilfull_a or_o violent_a sin_n either_o have_v or_o have_v not_o the_o consent_n of_o he_o which_o be_v compel_v if_o he_o give_v his_o consent_n as_o for_o example_n either_o to_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o evangelical_a truth_n which_o he_o have_v hitherto_o profess_v or_o to_o the_o commit_n of_o other_o grievous_a and_o horrible_a crime_n then_o be_v not_o the_o man_n compel_v void_a of_o blame_n for_o neither_o can_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n nor_o torment_n be_v a_o excuse_n for_o he_o choose_v death_n rather_o than_o to_o deny_v the_o truth_n to_o commit_v any_o heinous_a crime_n or_o ●●_o to_o be_v compel_v to_o consent_v to_o a_o wicked_a and_o horrible_a sin_n if_o thou_o shall_v rather_o choose_v to_o die_v than_o to_o do_v a_o filthy_a deed_n the_o tyrant_n shall_v not_o enforce_v or_o compel_v thou_o against_o thy_o will._n he_o may_v in_o deed_n kill_v thou_o but_o to_o compel_v thou_o to_o do_v evil_a against_o thy_o will_n he_o be_v not_o able_a for_o by_o die_v thou_o confesseste_v the_o truth_n and_o by_o die_v thou_o declare_v that_o thou_o will_v not_o do_v that_o which_o while_o thou_o live_v they_o do_v exact_v of_o thou_o and_o by_o that_o mean_v they_o neither_o overcome_v nor_o compel_v thou_o but_o be_v themselves_o overcome_v and_o compel_v to_o see_v and_o have_v trial_n of_o that_o which_o grieve_v they_o full_a sore_n antiochus_n epiphanes_n do_v what_o he_o may_v to_o have_v pollute_v the_o holy_a body_n of_o the_o maccabee_n with_o the_o use_n of_o unclean_a and_o forbid_a meat_n but_o they_o choose_v ratherto_o die_v than_o by_o live_v to_o be_v defile_v do_v by_o die_v overcome_v the_o tyrant_n and_o can_v not_o be_v compel_v and_o very_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n receive_v and_o approve_v among_o all_o professor_n of_o sound_n religion_n that_o death_n and_o all_o extremity_n whatsoever_o must_v soon_o be_v taste_v than_o any_o thing_n commit_v which_o be_v by_o nature_n filthy_a and_o repugnant_a to_o religion_n to_o proceed_v now_o if_o consent_n be_v not_o give_v but_o mere_a and_o unavoidable_a violence_n be_v offer_v to_o a_o godly_a man_n for_o here_o we_o make_v a_o difference_n béetwixte_v he_o that_o upon_o compulsion_n do_v yield_v to_o do_v wickedness_n and_o he_o which_o by_o compulsion_n can_v be_v bring_v unto_o it_o that_o violence_n spot_v not_o his_o uncorrupt_a and_o holy_a mind_n as_o for_o example_n if_o a_o godly_a man_n have_v his_o foot_n bind_v and_o arm_n fast_o pynnion_v be_v perforce_o bring_v into_o a_o idol_n temple_n and_o there_o compel_v to_o be_v present_a at_o their_o detestable_a sacrifice_n or_o if_o a_o unspotted_a virgin_n or_o honest_a matron_n be_v in_o the_o war_n or_o barbarous_a broil_n villanousiye_v abuse_v without_o their_o consent_n to_o the_o deed_n do_v and_o can_v have_v leave_n rather_o to_o die_v untouched_a then_o so_o to_o be_v undecent_o handle_v she_o be_v assure_v your_o self_n unspotted_a before_o the_o face_n of_o god_n for_o very_o wise_o say_v saint_n augustine_n not_o to_o suffer_v unjust_o but_o to_o do_v unjust_o be_v sin_n before_o god_o lib._n de_fw-fr libero_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la 3._o capit._fw-la 16._o again_o de_fw-fr mendacio_n ad_fw-la consentium_fw-la capit._fw-la 7._o he_o say_v that_o which_o the_o body_n where_o lust_n go_v not_o before_o do_v violent_o suffer_v ought_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v vexation_n than_o corruption_n or_o if_o all_o vexation_n be_v corruption_n yet_o all_o corruption_n be_v not_o filthy_a but_o that_o corruption_n only_o which_o lust_n have_v procure_v or_o whereunto_o lust_n have_v consent_v again_o in_o his_o first_o book_n de_fw-fr civitate_fw-la dei_fw-la capit._fw-la 18._o he_o say_v where_o the_o purpose_n of_o the_o mind_n remain_v constant_a by_o which_o the_o body_n be_v sanctify_v there_o the_o offer_a violence_n of_o a_o other_o lust_n take_v not_o from_o the_o body_n the_o purpose_a holiness_n which_o the_o constant_a persevearance_n of_o the_o party_n own_o chastity_n do_v still_o retain_v much_o more_o like_a to_o this_o have_v he_o in_o the_o same_o place_n and_o also_o in_o the_o sixtéenthe_n ninetéenth_fw-mi and_o twenty_o eight_o chapiters_n of_o the_o same_o book_n etc_n etc_n best_a so_o also_o we_o must_v think_v the_o best_a of_o the_o unwillfull_a death_n of_o man_n beside_o their_o wit_n that_o in_o their_o madness_n kill_v themselves_o for_o otherwise_o it_o can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n that_o god_o do_v either_o give_v leave_n or_o commandment_n 〈…〉_o to_o we_o mortal_a man_n to_o kill_v ourselves_o thereby_o the_o soon_o to_o obtain_v immortality_n or_o to_o avoid_v some_o imminent_a evil_n for_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o we_o be_v forbid_v so_o to_o do_v by_o the_o law_n which_o say_v thou_o shall_v not_o kill_v namely_o since_o he_o add_v not_o thy_o neighbour_n as_o he_o do_v in_o the_o other_o precept_n where_o he_o forbid_v to_o bear_v false_a witness_n for_o because_o he_o name_v not_o thy_o neighbour_n he_o do_v in_o that_o precept_n include_v thou_o self_n also_o therefore_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o seneca_n to_o be_v utter_o condemn_v which_o counsel_v man_n in_o misery_n to_o dispatch_v themselves_o that_o by_o death_n their_o misery_n may_v be_v end_v and_o saint_n augustine_n dispute_v against_o they_o that_o do_v therefore_o murder_v themselves_o because_o they_o will_v not_o be_v subject_n to_o other_o man_n filthy_a lust_n do_v say_v if_o it_o be_v a_o detestable_a crime_n and_o a_o damnable_a sin_n for_o a_o man_n to_o murder_v himself_o as_o the_o truth_n do_v manifest_o cry_v that_o it_o be_v who_o be_v so_o mad_a to_o say_v let_v we_o sin_n now_o lest_o peradventure_o hereafter_o we_o happen_v to_o sin_n let_v we_o now_o commit_v murder_n lest_o hereafter_o perhaps_o we_o fall_v into_o adultery_n if_o iniquity_n have_v so_o far_o the_o upper_a hand_n that_o not_o innocence_n but_o mischief_n be_v most_o set_v buy_v be_v it_o not_o better_o by_o live_v to_o hazard_v the_o chance_n of_o a_o uncertain_a deflouration_n in_o time_n to_o come_v than_o by_o die_v to_o commit_v a_o certain_a murder_n in_o the_o
govern_v and_o preserve_v they_o even_o till_o the_o end_n for_o the_o same_o kingly_a prophet_n celebrate_v the_o providence_n of_o god_n about_o man_n and_o his_o estate_n do_v say_v thou_o oh_o lord_n know_v my_o down_n sit_v 139._o and_o my_o uprising_n thou_o spy_v out_o all_o my_o way_n for_o there_o be_v not_o a_o word_n in_o my_o tongue_n but_o thou_o oh_o lord_n do_v know_v it_o altogether_o thou_o have_v fashion_v i_o behind_o and_o before_o and_o lay_v thine_o hand_n upon_o i_o and_o so_o forth_o as_o follow_v in_o the_o 139._o psalm_n which_o psalm_n do_v whole_o make_v to_o this_o purpose_n with_o this_o doctrine_n of_o david_n do_v the_o testimony_n of_o solomon_n agree_v where_o he_o say_v the_o king_n heart_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n like_v 21._o as_o the_o river_n of_o water_n he_o may_v turn_v it_o whither_o soever_o he_o will._n every_o man_n way_n seem_v right_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n but_o the_o lord_n drive_v or_o rule_v the_o heart_n and_o in_o the_o gospel_n the_o lord_n say_v be_v not_o two_o little_a sparrow_n sell_v for_o a_o farthing_n and_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v not_o 10._o light_o on_o the_o ground_n without_o your_o father_n yea_o even_o all_o the_o hair_n of_o your_o head_n be_v number_v there_o be_v beside_o these_o other_o evident_a testimony_n also_o of_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n daniel_n the_o wise_a man_n of_o all_o the_o east_n and_o the_o most_o excellent_a prophet_n of_o god_n do_v say_v wisdom_n &_o strength_n be_v the_o lord_n it_o be_v he_o that_o 2._o change_v the_o time_n and_o season_n he_o take_v away_o king_n and_o set_v up_o king_n he_o give_v wisdom_n unto_o the_o wise_a and_o understand_v to_o those_o that_o understand_v he_o reveal_v the_o deep_a &_o secret_a thing_n he_o know_v the_o thing_n that_o lie_v in_o darkness_n for_o the_o light_n dwell_v in_o he_o moreover_o ethan_n the_o ezrachite_a say_v thou_o lord_n rule_a 89._o the_o rage_a of_o the_o sea_n thou_o still_a the_o wave_n thereof_o when_o they_o arise_v thou_o have_v a_o almighty_a arm_n thou_o strengthene_v thy_o hand_n and_o set_v up_o thy_o right-hand_a in_o justice_n and_o equity_n be_v thy_o royal_a throne_n establish_v goodness_n and_o faith_n do_v go_v before_o thy_o face_n and_o david_n say_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o thy_o work_v oh_o god_n shall_v the_o earth_n 104._o be_v fill_v and_o he_o bring_v forth_o grass_n for_o cattle_n and_o hear_v be_v for_o the_o use_n of_o man_n and_o bread_n to_o strengthen_v the_o heart_n of_o man_n and_o wine_n to_o make_v he_o merry_a and_o immediate_o after_o in_o the_o same_o psalm_n all_o thing_n do_v wait_v upon_o thou_o that_o thou_o may_v give_v they_o their_o meat_n in_o due_a season_n when_o thou_o give_v it_o they_o gather_v it_o &_o when_o thou_o open_v thy_o hand_n they_o be_v fill_v with_o good_a if_o thou_o hide_v thy_o face_n they_o be_v trouble_v and_o if_o thou_o take_v away_o their_o breath_n they_o die_v and_o be_v turn_v into_o their_o dust_n again_o the_o lord_n upphold_v all_o such_o as_o fall_v and_o 104._o lift_v up_o all_o those_o that_o be_v down_o the_o lord_n lose_v man_n from_o their_o fetters_n the_o lord_n give_v sight_n unto_o the_o blind_a the_o lord_n keep_v the_o stranger_n he_o defend_v the_o fatherless_a and_o widow_n and_o the_o way_n of_o the_o wicked_a he_o turn_v upsidedown_o great_a be_v our_o 147._o lord_n and_o great_a be_v his_o power_n &_o of_o his_o wisdom_n there_o be_v none_o end_n he_o tell_v the_o number_n of_o the_o star_n &_o call_v they_o all_o by_o their_o name_n he_o cover_v the_o heaven_n with_o cloud_n &_o prepare_v rain_n for_o the_o earth_n he_o give_v fodder_n unto_o the_o cattle_n and_o meat_n to_o the_o young_a raven_n that_o call_v upon_o he_o he_o give_v snow_n as_o will_v &_o scatter_v the_o hoar_a frost_n like_o ash_n he_o cast_v forth_o his_o ice_n like_o morsel_n who_o shall_v abide_v before_o the_o face_n of_o his_o cold_a he_o shall_v send_v out_o his_o word_n and_o melt_v they_o he_o shall_v blow_v with_o his_o wind_n and_o the_o water_n shall_v flow_v and_o again_o i_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n be_v great_a and_o that_o he_o be_v above_o all_o god_n what_o 135_o please_v he_o that_o have_v he_o do_v in_o heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o in_o the_o sea_n and_o in_o all_o deep_a place_n he_o lift_v up_o the_o cloud_n from_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o turn_v lighten_v unto_o rain_n and_o bring_v the_o wind_n out_o of_o their_o treasury_n there_o be_v many_o testimony_n like_v to_o these_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o 38._o and_o 39_o cap._n of_o the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o rifely_a in_o the_o psalm_n and_o book_n of_o the_o holy_a prophet_n but_o these_o that_o hitherto_o i_o have_v recite_v be_v sufficient_a enough_o testify_v abundant_o that_o god_n by_o his_o providence_n do_v govern_v this_o world_n and_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v therein_o and_o especial_o man_n himself_o the_o possessor_n of_o the_o world_n for_o who_o all_o thing_n be_v make_v we_o do_v here_o attribute_v nothing_o to_o gentilism_n destiny_n either_o stoical_a or_o astrological_a neither_o have_v we_o any_o thing_n to_o do_v with_o that_o ethnic_n fortune_n either_o good_a or_o ill_n we_o do_v utter_o detest_v philosophical_a disputation_n in_o this_o case_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o prophet_n write_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o content_v ourselves_o in_o the_o only_a word_n of_o god_n &_o do_v therefore_o simple_o believe_v &_o teach_v y_fw-es god_n by_o his_o providence_n do_v govern_v all_o thing_n and_o y_fw-fr too_o according_a to_o his_o own_o good_a will_n just_a judgement_n &_o comely_a order_n by_o mean_n most_o just_a and_o equal_a which_o mean_v whosoever_o despise_v and_o make_v his_o boast_n only_o of_o you_o bare_a name_n of_o god_n providence_n it_o can_v be_v that_o he_o shall_v right_o understand_v the_o effect_n of_o god_n providence_n they_o make_v this_o objection_n because_o all_o thing_n in_o the_o world_n be_v do_v by_o god_n providence_n therefore_o we_o need_v not_o to_o put_v in_o our_o oar_n we_o may_v snort_v idle_o &_o take_v our_o ease_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o expect_v the_o work_n or_o impel_v of_o god_n for_o if_o he_o need_v our_o aid_n he_o will_v whether_o we_o will_v or_o no_o even_o impel_v we_o to_o the_o work_n which_o he_o will_v have_v to_o be_v wrought_v by_o we_o but_o the_o saint_n in_o the_o mean_n scripture_n be_v lay_v before_o we_o &_o show_v to_o have_v think_v speak_v &_o judge_v more_o sincere_o of_o god_n providence_n the_o angel_n do_v in_o express_a word_n say_v to_o lot_n have_v thou_o to_o zoar_v and_o save_v thou_o self_n there_o for_o i_o can_v do_v nothing_o until_o thou_o 16._o be_v come_v thither_o loe_o here_o by_o god_n providence_n lot_z with_o his_o be_v save_v the_o citizen_n of_o sodom_n be_v destroy_v &_o of_o all_o the_o city_n thereabout_o and_o yet_o even_o in_o the_o very_a work_n of_o his_o preservation_n lot_n labour_n be_v require_v and_o he_o bid_v to_o do_v his_o goodwill_n to_o save_v himself_o yea_o i_o can_v say_v the_o lord_n do_v any_o thing_n till_o thou_o be_v come_v into_o zoar._n the_o king_n and_o prophet_n david_n do_v plain_o say_v i_o have_v hope_v in_o thou_o oh_o lord_n i_o have_v say_v thou_o be_v my_o god_n my_o day_n be_v in_o thy_o hand_n and_o yet_o even_o 31._o he_o which_o do_v whole_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n do_v earnest_o consider_v with_o himself_o how_o with_o his_o diligence_n and_o industry_n he_o may_v deceive_v and_o escape_v from_o the_o lay_n in_o wait_v of_o saul_n his_o father_n in_o law_n neither_o 19_o do_v he_o despise_v the_o aid_n and_o shift_n of_o his_o wife_n michol_n he_o do_v not_o reply_n to_o she_o again_o and_o say_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n therefore_o there_o need_v no_o wile_n to_o be●_z wrought_v the_o almighty_a be_v able_a to_o take_v i_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o father_n soldier_n or_o otherwise_o to_o save_v i_o by_o some_o miraculous_a mean_n let_v we_o content_v ourselves_o &_o suffer_v god_n to_o work_v his_o will_n in_o we_o he_o do_v not_o argue_v thus_o but_o do_v understand_v that_o as_o god_n providence_n do_v proceed_v in_o a_o certain_a order_n by_o middle_a mean_n so_o that_o it_o be_v his_o part_n to_o apply_v himself_o to_o mean_n in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n &_o by_o all_o assay_n to_o do_v his_o best_a for_o his_o own_o defence_n s._n paul_n do_v hear_v the_o lord_n flat_o say_v as_o thou_o have_v bear_v witness_n of_o i_o
arise_v which_o savour_v sweet_a by_o virtue_n force_n compelle_n it_o do_v ascend_v and_o pierce_v the_o azure_a sky_n the_o send_v of_o balm_n and_o safron_n it_o excel_v yea_o frankincense_n and_o persian_a spice_n smell_n from_o earth_n to_o heaven_n it_o mount_v up_o aloft_o and_o please_v god_n therewith_o delight_v oft_o and_o so_o forth_o as_o follow_v to_o this_o purpose_n these_o thing_n i_o think_v sufficient_a concern_v the_o inward_a service_n of_o god_n wherein_o i_o confess_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n to_o be_v somewhat_o which_o may_v be_v refer_v also_o to_o the_o outward_a service_n of_o god._n the_o outward_a service_n of_o god_o spring_v from_o the_o inward_a neither_o god._n be_v it_o know_v to_o god_n alone_o as_o this_o other_o but_o be_v open_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n and_o it_o be_v a_o keep_v or_o execute_v of_o the_o rite_n institute_v of_o god_n himself_o whereby_o we_o do_v both_o testify_v unto_o man_n the_o inward_a service_n and_o practice_v they_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o our_o profit_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v among_o the_o ancient_a people_n the_o temple_n the_o priesthood_n and_o all_o the_o ceremony_n institute_v of_o god_n which_o be_v very_o often_o call_v the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o this_o service_n have_v his_o appoint_a limit_n for_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o every_o one_o to_o feign_v a_o service_n of_o god_n after_o their_o own_o pleasure_n as_o be_v show_v at_o large_a in_o the_o law_n and_o in_o the_o holy_a history_n now_o that_o outward_a service_n serve_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o profit_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o thing_n i_o have_v declare_v when_o i_o be_v in_o hand_n with_o the_o jewish_a ceremony_n furthermore_o as_o christ_n abrogate_a those_o old_a rite_n so_o in_o their_o stead_n he_o place_v again_o a_o very_a few_o for_o he_o institute_v a_o holy_a assembly_n wherein_o his_o will_n be_v that_o his_o word_n shall_v be_v preach_v and_o expound_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n to_o his_o own_o glory_n and_o to_o our_o profit_n common_a prayer_n to_o be_v make_v and_o the_o sacrament_n to_o be_v minister_v and_o receive_v to_o which_o thing_n a_o convenient_a place_n be_v necessary_a fit_a time_n due_a order_n and_o holy_a instrument_n where_o again_o the_o godly_a do_v in_o nothing_o follow_v their_o own_o will_n for_o from_o the_o word_n of_o that_o god_n who_o they_o serve_v they_o fetch_v the_o whole_a manner_n and_o order_n of_o serve_v he_o whereof_o somewhat_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o four_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n and_o shall_v be_v speak_v more_o at_o large_a in_o due_a place_n and_o order_n to_o be_v short_a they_o serve_v god_n with_o outward_a service_n who_o by_o faith_n and_o obedience_n gather_v themselves_o into_o the_o holy_a assembly_n at_o limit_v time_n who_o keep_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n derive_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o holy_a exposition_n of_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n who_o pray_v public_o with_o the_o church_n who_o religious_o participate_v the_o sacrament_n and_o observe_v other_o lawful_a and_o wholesome_a rite_n or_o ceremony_n by_o this_o their_o service_n they_o glorify_v god_n among_o man_n and_o receive_v of_o god_n no_o small_a reward_n namely_o his_o blessing_n and_o increase_v of_o heavenly_a gift_n there_o be_v no_o need_n i_o think_v in_o this_o place_n of_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n to_o confirm_v these_o thing_n that_o we_o have_v hitherto_o speak_v touch_v the_o outward_a service_n of_o god_n for_o every_o where_o in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o act_n and_o epistle_n of_o the_o apostle_n very_o many_o be_v to_o be_v find_v for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v every_o where_o gather_v together_o holy_a assembly_n to_o who_o he_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o commend_v prayer_n of_o marie_n sit_v at_o his_o foot_n and_o hear_v his_o preach_n he_o say_v this_o one_o thing_n be_v necessary_a marie_n 11._o have_v choose_v the_o good_a part_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v take_v from_o she_o and_o in_o a_o other_o place_n bless_a be_v they_o say_v he_o which_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o god_o and_o keep_v it_o sure_o the_o lord_n himself_o institute_v and_o put_v in_o use_v the_o sacrament_n for_o to_o john_n not_o consent_v to_o baptise_v he_o at_o his_o ask_n and_o say_v i_o have_v need_n to_o be_v baptize_v of_o thou_o and_o come_v thou_o to_o i_o he_o answer_v let_v it_o be_v so_o now_o for_o so_o it_o become_v we_o to_o fulfil_v all_o righteousness_n whereupon_o the_o apostle_n paul_n likewise_o diligent_o commend_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n to_o the_o church_n ordain_v most_o decent_o holy_a assembly_n the_o place_n be_v very_o well_o know_v unto_o all_o 1._o cor._n 11._o 14._o 16._o likewise_o 1._o tim._n 2._o and_o elsewhere_o but_o before_o i_o conclude_v this_o place_n i_o will_v show_v that_o only_a god_n be_v to_o be_v serve_v serve_v and_o sure_o the_o service_n itself_o whereof_o we_o have_v hitherto_o entreat_v can_v not_o be_v bestow_v upon_o any_o creature_n neither_o angel_n nor_o celestial_a saint_n to_o god_o alone_o it_o agree_v wherefore_o there_o be_v none_o so_o blind_a but_o may_v see_v that_o god_n alone_o must_v be_v serve_v with_o these_o and_o when_o god_n require_v of_o we_o his_o service_n or_o duty_n he_o require_v our_o whole_a heart_n nothing_o therefore_o be_v leave_v we_o to_o bestow_v upon_o other_o moses_n full_a of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n say_v in_o his_o law_n you_o shall_v walk_v after_o the_o lord_n your_o god_n and_o fear_v 13._o he_o his_o commandment_n shall_v you_o keep_v and_o you_o shall_v hearken_v unto_o his_o voice_n and_o you_o shall_v serve_v he_o and_o cleave_v unto_o he_o neither_o make_v it_o any_o matter_n that_o here_o the_o word_n alone_o be_v not_o add_v see_v that_o the_o word_n be_v utter_v with_o a_o emphasis_n or_o force_n for_o when_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v you_o serve_v and_o to_o he_o you_o shall_v cleave_v what_o other_o thing_n do_v we_o understand_v than_o to_o he_o and_o not_o to_o any_o other_o therefore_o to_o he_o alone_o furthermore_o in_o the_o six_o chapter_n of_o deuteronomie_n thou_o do_v not_o read_v thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o alone_o shall_v thou_o serve_v and_o thou_o shall_v swear_v by_o his_o name_n but_o thou_o shall_v fear_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o emphatical_o shall_v thou_o serve_v and_o thou_o shall_v swear_v by_o his_o name_n furthermore_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o gospel_n bring_v these_o word_n of_o the_o law_n against_o the_o tempter_n and_o make_v the_o emphaphasis_n plain_n it_o be_v write_v say_v he_o thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v 4._o which_o testimony_n doubtless_o be_v most_o effectual_a and_o pithy_a be_v only_o sufficient_a for_o our_o demonstration_n that_o god_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v serve_v i_o will_v moreover_o add_v hereunto_o the_o testimony_n of_o a_o man_n howbeit_o establish_v by_o divine_a authority_n which_o we_o also_o elsewhere_o set_v down_o in_o our_o book_n s._n augustine_n de_fw-fr quantitate_fw-la animae_fw-la do_v show_v that_o god_o alone_o be_v to_o be_v serve_v in_o this_o sort_n whatsoever_o the_o soul_n do_v serve_v as_o god_n needful_a it_o be_v that_o she_o think_v the_o same_o better_a than_o herself_o but_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o neither_o the_o earth_n nor_o the_o sea_n nor_o the_o star_n nor_o the_o moon_n nor_o the_o sun_n nor_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o that_o may_v be_v feel_v or_o see_v with_o these_o eye_n to_o be_v short_a not_o heaven_n itself_o which_o can_v not_o be_v see_v of_o we_o be_v better_a than_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n yea_o rather_o that_o all_o these_o be_v far_o worse_o than_o be_v any_o soul_n assure_a reason_n do_v convince_v and_o anon_o if_o therefore_o there_o be_v any_o otherthing_n of_o those_o that_o god_n have_v create_v something_o be_v worse_a something_o be_v as_o good_a worse_o as_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n equal_a as_o the_o angel_n but_o nothing_o be_v better_a and_o if_o happy_o something_o of_o these_o be_v better_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v by_o sin_n and_o not_o by_o nature_n by_o which_o sin_n notwithstanding_o it_o become_v not_o so_o ill_a that_o the_o soul_n of_o a_o beast_n be_v either_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o it_o or_o to_o be_v compare_v with_o it_o god_n therefore_o alone_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v of_o it_o who_o alone_o be_v the_o author_n of_o it_o and_o as_o for_o any_o other_o man_n though_o he_o be_v most_o wise_a and_o most_o perfect_a or_o any_o soul_n endue_v with_o reason_n and_o most_o bless_a they_o be_v only_o
his_o own_o nature_n he_o be_v unspeakable_a unmeasurable_a incomprehensible_a everlasting_a yet_o notwithstanding_o that_o i_o may_v say_v somewhat_o in_o a_o certain_a order_n concern_v he_o if_o it_o will_v be_v no_o otherwise_o i_o will_v at_o the_o last_o shadow_n out_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n himself_o very_o large_o declare_v of_o he_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o trinity_n to_o be_v worship_v very_a god_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n which_o enlighten_v regenerate_v sanctify_v and_o fulfil_v the_o faithful_a with_o all_o good_a grace_n but_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n i_o think_v it_o be_v sufficient_o at_o large_a declare_v in_o the_o three_o sermon_n of_o this_o decade_n sure_o this_o only_a sentence_n of_o our_o saviour_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v abundant_o confirm_v to_o godly_a mind_n that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o trinity_n moreover_o that_o he_o be_v very_a god_n god._n of_o the_o same_o power_n glory_n majesty_n and_o be_v with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n that_o especial_o prove_v because_o he_o be_v the_o three_o person_n in_o the_o holy_a trinity_n neither_o must_v we_o think_v that_o he_o be_v lesser_a than_o they_o because_o he_o be_v reckon_v in_o the_o three_o place_n for_o though_o the_o bless_v trinity_n be_v remember_v of_o we_o in_o order_n yet_o notwithstanding_o there_o be_v no_o degree_n no_o time_n no_o place_n or_o number_n in_o the_o bless_a trinity_n for_o bless_a athanasius_n make_v his_o confession_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o say_v the_o catholic_a faith_n be_v this_o that_o we_o worship_v one_o god_n in_o trinity_n and_o trinity_n in_o unity_n neither_o confound_v the_o person_n nor_o divide_v the_o substance_n for_o there_o be_v one_o person_n of_o the_o father_n another_o of_o the_o son_n &_o another_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o the_o glory_n equal_v the_o majesty_n coeternal_a such_o as_o the_o father_n be_v such_o be_v the_o son_n and_o such_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o father_n uncreate_v the_o son_n uncreate_v &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n uncreate_v the_o father_n incomprehensible_a the_o son_n incomprehensible_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n incomprehensible_a that_o father_n eternal_a the_o son_n eternal_a and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n eternal_a and_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o three_o eternalls_n but_o one_o eternal_a etc_n etc_n and_o augustine_n also_o in_o his_o 15._o book_n de_fw-fr trinitate_fw-la cap._n 26._o say_v in_o that_o high_a trinity_n which_o be_v god_n there_o be_v no_o distance_n of_o time_n whereby_o it_o may_v be_v show_v or_o at_o least_o demand_v whether_o the_o son_n be_v first_o bear_v of_o the_o father_n and_o afterward_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o proceed_v from_o they_o both_o etc_n etc_n true_o we_o confess_v that_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v one_o god_n and_o that_o the_o same_o be_v eternal_a therefore_o let_v it_o trouble_v no_o man_n that_o the_o spirit_n be_v put_v in_o the_o last_o place_n for_o when_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinth_n frame_v his_o blessing_n he_o say_v the_o grace_n 13._o of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v with_o you_o all_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o the_o last_o place_n but_o the_o same_o paul_n say_v there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o spirit_n and_o there_o be_v 12._o difference_n of_o administration_n but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o lord_n and_o there_o be_v diverse_a manner_n of_o operation_n but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o god_n which_o work_v all_o in_o all_o set_v the_o spirit_n in_o the_o first_o place_n teach_v that_o the_o order_n of_o name_n do_v not_o make_v difference_n of_o dignity_n after_o this_o manner_n also_o in_o the_o former_a testimony_n he_o place_v the_o son_n before_o the_o father_n not_o overthrow_v the_o order_n which_o the_o lord_n have_v set_v down_o in_o matth._n but_o show_v the_o equality_n of_o the_o trinity_n in_o honour_n for_o what_o can_v 28._o thou_o more_o plain_o say_v than_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n say_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v sanctify_v renew_v regenerate_v give_v life_n and_o save_v and_o these_o be_v operation_n agreeable_a to_o god_n only_o by_o operation_n therefore_o we_o manifest_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n of_o the_o same_o essence_n and_o power_n with_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n for_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o begin_n before_o all_o creature_n visible_a and_o invisible_a be_v a_o creator_n not_o a_o creature_n as_o job_n witness_v his_o spirit_n have_v garnish_v the_o heaven_n again_o the_o spirit_n 25._o of_o god_o have_v make_v i_o and_o the_o breath_n of_o the_o almighty_a have_v give_v i_o life_n zacharias_n the_o priest_n and_o father_n of_o s._n john_n baptist_n say_v bless_a be_v the_o 1._o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n for_o he_o have_v redeem_v his_o people_n as_o he_o speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o holy_a prophet_n which_o have_v be_v since_o the_o world_n begin_v and_o s._n peter_n say_v for_o the_o prophecy_n 1._o come_v not_o in_o old_a time_n by_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o holy_a man_n of_o god_o speak_v as_o they_o be_v move_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o this_o i_o pray_v you_o who_o can_v gather_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n for_o god_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o prophet_n therefore_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god._n the_o same_o peter_n also_o in_o express_a word_n have_v call_v the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n 5._o when_o he_o accuse_v ananias_n of_o theft_n yea_o and_o also_o of_o sacrilege_n for_o when_o he_o have_v say_v how_o be_v it_o that_o satan_n have_v fill_v thy_o heart_n to_o lie_v unto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o and_o by_o he_o add_v thou_o have_v not_o lie_v unto_o man_n but_o unto_o god._n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o saint_n peter_n agree_v those_o thing_n in_o all_o point_n which_o s._n paul_n the_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n have_v teach_v for_o he_o call_v the_o believer_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n know_v you_o not_o say_v he_o that_o you_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_o 3._o dwell_v in_o you_o and_o again_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n 6_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v in_o you_o who_o you_o have_v of_o god_n and_o year_n not_o your_o own_o to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o god_n and_o to_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n paul_n take_v to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n it_o follow_v therefore_o that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v god_n for_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n he_o express_o name_v the_o holy_a ghost_n god_n for_o after_o he_o have_v say_v there_o be_v diversity_n of_o gift_n but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o spirit_n and_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o kind_n of_o gift_n by_o and_o by_o he_o add_v and_o all_o these_o thing_n work_v even_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o spirit_n distribute_v to_o 12._o every_o man_n several_o even_o as_o he_o will._n and_o he_o himself_o have_v say_v a_o little_a afore_o there_o be_v diverse_a manner_n of_o operation_n but_o it_o be_v the_o self_n same_o god_o which_o work_v all_o in_o all_o but_o didymus_n alexandrinus_n a_o man_n of_o excellent_a learning_n do_v knit_v up_o a_o most_o evident_a argument_n of_o the_o godhead_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n declare_v also_o that_o his_o nature_n do_v altogether_o differ_v from_o the_o nature_n of_o angel_n for_o in_o his_o 1._o lib._n de_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it he_o have_v leave_v this_o write_v s._n hierome_n so_o interpret_n it_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v a_o creature_n he_o shall_v have_v at_o the_o least_o a_o limitable_a substance_n as_o have_v all_o thing_n which_o be_v make_v for_o although_o invisible_a creature_n be_v not_o limit_v within_o place_n and_o bound_n yet_o in_o property_n of_o substance_n they_o be_v limit_v but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n since_o he_o be_v in_o many_o place_n have_v not_o a_o limitable_a substance_n for_o jesus_n send_v forth_o the_o preacher_n of_o his_o gospel_n he_o fill_v they_o with_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o neither_o do_v all_o the_o apostle_n go_v to_o all_o
be_v carry_v by_o the_o angel_n into_o abraham_n bosom_n to_o this_o also_o now_o seem_v that_o say_n of_o daniel_n to_o belong_v as_o i_o be_v yet_o a_o speak_v make_v supplication_n 9_o and_o confess_v my_o own_o find_v and_o the_o sin_n of_o my_o people_n israel_n and_o pour_v forth_o my_o prayer_n before_o the_o lord_n my_o god_n for_o the_o holy_a hill_n of_o my_o god_n yea_o while_o i_o be_v yet_o speak_v in_o my_o prayer_n the_o man_n gabriel_n who_o i_o have_v see_v before_o in_o the_o vision_n come_v fly_v hasty_o unto_o i_o loe_o our_o soul_n be_v carry_v up_o into_o heaven_n by_o the_o angel_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v elsewhere_o say_v at_o a_o instant_a to_o be_v take_v up_o into_o heaven_n afterward_o as_o soon_o as_o daniel_n have_v pray_v unto_o the_o lord_n the_o angel_n without_o any_o long_a delay_n fly_v speedy_o for_o so_o the_o scripture_n speak_v for_o our_o capacity_n be_v present_a with_o he_o that_o pray_v and_o show_v he_o that_o he_o be_v hear_v of_o god_n angel_n therefore_o be_v swift_a and_o pass_v speedy_a be_v keep_v down_o with_o no_o weight_n neither_o hinder_v or_o stay_v from_o perform_v those_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o be_v sense_n from_o heaven_n albeit_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o place_n as_o creature_n though_o not_o limit_v and_o be_v move_v with_o a_o certain_a order_n and_o manner_n agreeable_a to_o that_o spiritual_a nature_n this_o treatise_n require_v peradventure_o that_o something_o also_o be_v speak_v of_o the_o might_n angel_n power_n and_o strength_n of_o angel_n but_o what_o need_v many_o word_n in_o a_o manifest_a matter_n for_o since_o the_o lord_n who_o send_v forth_o his_o angel_n be_v almighty_a there_o be_v nothing_o but_o that_o angel_n can_v do_v it_o in_o those_o their_o embassage_n &_o ministery_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o nature_n that_o be_v able_a to_o withstand_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o almighty_a god_n for_o angel_n be_v not_o call_v power_n and_o virtue_n for_o nought_o i_o will_v show_v one_o example_n among_o many_o and_o yet_o not_o the_o chief_a one_o angel_n in_o one_o night_n without_o any_o furniture_n or_o much_o ado_n sl●e_v in_o the_o ten●es_n of_o the_o assyrians_n at_o the_o wall_n of_o hi●r●salem_n a_o hundred_o fourscore_o and_o five_o thousand_o of_o the_o valiant_a soldier_n in_o daniel_n we_o have_v such_o a_o description_n of_o a_o angel_n whereby_o both_o the_o power_n and_o excellency_n of_o angel_n may_v be_v gather_v his_o body_n say_v he_o be_v like_o the_o turkish_a or_o jasper_n stone_n his_o face_n 10._o to_o look_v upon_o be_v like_o lightning_n his_o eye_n as_o lamp_n of_o fire_n his_o arm_n &_o foot_n be_v like_a in_o colour_n to_o polish_a brass_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o his_o word_n be_v like_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o multitude_n so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o needful_a to_o make_v a_o long_a discourse_n of_o the_o knowledge_n &_o wisdom_n of_o angel_n for_o this_o be_v not_o a_o thing_n that_o pass_v capacity_n see_v angel_n be_v angel_n creature_n but_o in_o so_o much_o as_o pertain_v to_o their_o embassage_n and_o ministery_n sure_o they_o be_v most_o wise_a in_o all_o point_v furnish_v and_o in_o no_o part_n diminish_v for_o he_o that_o send_v they_o be_v everlasting_a wisdom_n itself_o and_o he_o furnish_v his_o ambassador_n most_o perfect_o furthermore_o touch_v the_o multitude_n and_o order_n of_o angel_n angel_n certain_a divine_n have_v witty_o and_o wise_o enough_o dispute_v the_o scripture_n simple_o affirm_v that_o angel_n be_v innumerable_a for_o daniel_n say_v a_o thousand_o thousand_o minister_v unto_o 7._o he_o and_o ten_o thousand_o thousand_o stand_v before_o he_o it_o be_v also_o read_v that_o christ_n say_v to_o peter_n think_v thou_o that_o i_o can_v not_o pray_v unto_o my_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v send_v unto_o i_o more_o than_o 26_o twelve_o legion_n of_o angel_n paul●_n also_o say_v you_o be_v come_v into_o the_o city_n of_o the_o live_a god_n the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n 12._o and_o to_o a_o innumerable_a company_n of_o angel_n many_o distinguish_v that_o innumerable_a multitude_n into_o nine_o company_n and_o these_o again_o they_o bring_v into_o three_o hierarchy_n or_o holy_a principality_n of_o which_o they_o affirm_v that_o each_o of_o they_o have_v three_o order_n the_o first_o seraphim_n cherubin_n throne_n the_o second_o lordship_n virtue_n power_n the_o three_o principality_n archangel_n and_o angel_n they_o add_v in_o what_o they_o differ_v between_o themselves_o and_o what_o be_v proper_a to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o but_o s._n august_n in_o his_o encheir_n cap._n 58._o say_v wherein_o lordship_n principality_n and_o power_n do_v differ_v between_o themselves_o let_v they_o tell_v that_o can_v if_o yet_o they_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o they_o say_v i_o confess_v myself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o these_o matter_n and_o the_o same_o augustine_n ad_fw-la orosium_n contra_fw-la luscillianistas_n say_v true_o the_o apostle_n say_v whether_o seat_n threnes_n whether_o lordship_n whether_o principality_n whether_o power_n and_o therefore_o that_o there_o be_v seat_n lordship_n principality_n and_o power_n in_o the_o host_n of_o heaven_n i_o steadfast_o believe_v and_o that_o they_o differ_v somewhat_o between_o themselves_o i_o hold_v it_o for_o a_o undoubted_a truth_n but_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o differ_v between_o themselves_o i_o know_v not_o neither_o true_o do_v i_o think_v myself_o for_o the_o ignorance_n thereof_o to_o be_v endanger_v as_o i_o be_o for_o disobedience_n if_o i_o neglect_v the_o lord_n commandment_n and_o anon_o in_o the_o same_o place_n he_o show_v that_o we_o must_v not_o busy_o and_o curious_o search_v after_o these_o thing_n who_o counsel_n we_o do_v willing_o obey_v perceive_v that_o the_o scripture_n which_o minister_n unto_o we_o all_o thing_n necessary_a and_o healthful_a have_v set_v down_o nothing_o concern_v they_o yet_o this_o we_o can_v not_o deny_v that_o those_o name_n or_o if_o you_o will_v so_o call_v they_o order_n of_o angel_n be_v express_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n whereupon_o for_o our_o weakness_n it_o be_v meet_v after_o a_o fort_n to_o expound_v they_o as_o we_o may_v these_o angel_n blesse●_n spirit_n of_o heaven_n seem_v general_o and_o simple_o to_o be_v call_v angel_n because_o they_o be_v the_o messenger_n &_o ambassador_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_o angel_n who_o it_o appear_v be_v call_v archangel_n when_o they_o besent_v in_o message_n in_o archangel_n god_n great_a matter_n to_o show_v or_o do_v thing_n altogether_o hard_a and_o heavenly_a for_o so_o we_o read_v in_o paul_n that_o the_o lord_n himself_o shall_v deseend_v from_o heaven_n in_o a_o shout_n and_o in_o the_o voice_n of_o 4._o a_o archangel_n and_o in_o the_o trump_n of_o god._n for_o that_o we_o may_v compare_v small_a thing_n with_o great_a we_o see_v that_o king_n and_o prince_n in_o weighty_a affair_n appoint_v none_o to_o be_v their_o ambassador_n but_o noble_a man_n it_o appear_v that_o they_o be_v call_v throne_n because_o they_o stand_v seat_n always_o at_o the_o throne_n of_o god_n or_o else_o because_o god_n be_v read_v in_o the_o prophet_n to_o have_v make_v and_o place_v his_o own_o seat_n in_o angel_n and_o to_o be_v carry_v of_o they_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o coach_n of_o a_o king_n as_o david_n say_v he_o bow_v the_o heaven_n 18._o and_o come_v down_o and_o there_o be_v darkness_n under_o his_o foot_n he_o ride_v upon_o the_o cherubim_n or_o be_v carry_v upon_o the_o cherubim_n and_o do_v fly_v he_o come_v fly_v upon_o the_o wing_n of_o the_o wind_n furthermore_o the_o description_n of_o the_o chariot_n and_o throne_n of_o god_n in_o ezechiel_n be_v know_v they_o seem_v to_o be_v call_v lordship_n principality_n and_o power_n because_o god_n execute_v his_o government_n and_o exercise_v his_o principality_n own_o power_n in_o the_o world_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n for_o so_o also_o they_o be_v call_v power_n and_o army_n or_o the_o power_n host_n of_o heaven_n for_o they_o encompass_v the_o lord_n round_o as_o his_o guard_n and_o he_o who_o be_v call_v the_o god_n of_o sabbaoth_n or_o of_o host_n the_o lord_n i_o say_v of_o all_o angel_n spirit_n and_o creature_n who_o ministry_n he_o use_v when_o where_o how_o and_o as_o much_o as_o it_o please_v he_o use_v they_o also_o as_o his_o soldier_n s._n hierome_n think_v they_o be_v call_v cherubim_v of_o their_o exceed_a knowledge_n cherubin_n other_o expound_v they_o swift_a seraphim_n have_v their_o name_n of_o ferventness_n or_o seraphim_n else_o because_o they_o be_v compare_v to_o most_o pure_a and_o clear_a fire_n or_o for_o that_o they_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n by_o these_o name_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n be_v shadow_v
of_o prayer_n for_o the_o ●eade_n for_o that_o whichsome_a albedge_n out_o of_o ●he_n second_o book_n of_o mach●bei●_n prove_v thing_n for_o that_o book_n be_v not_o canonical_a which_o thing_n it_o behoove_v they_o to_o have_v learn_v long_o since_o even_o out_o of_o hierome_n they_o add_v that_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a be_v a_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o hear_v they_o but_o i_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o their_o written_a doctrine_n i_o know_v well_o enough_o that_o the_o write_v doctrine_n of_o the_o apostl_v no_o where_o command_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o in_o no_o place_n allow_v they_o when_o paul_n the_o apostle_n exhort_v the_o thessalonian_n to_o moderation_n in_o lament_v 4._o for_o the_o dead_a the_o time_n be_v then_o very_a fit_n and_o most_o 〈◊〉_d to_o give_v commandment_n concern_v offering_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a if_o he_o have_v think_v they_o any_o whit_n profitable_a and_o necessary_a yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o make_v no_o manner_n mention_v of_o they_o yea_o rather_o he_o simple_o teach_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v touch_v the_o fowl_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v separate_v from_o their_o body_n namely_o that_o they_o live_v in_o everlasting_a blessedness_n with_o christ_n wait_v and_o look_v for_o the_o resurrection_n of_o their_o body_n but_o who_o can_v not_o see_v that_o this_o certainty_n and_o plainness_n of_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v entangle_v and_o perilous_o shake_v with_o this_o feign_a apostolic_a tradition_n for_o if_o we_o believe_v in_o christ_n let_v we_o believe_v his_o word_n and_o promise_n he_o himself_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o life_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o believe_a even_o immediate_o 〈…〉_o death_n of_o the_o body_n 〈◊〉_d escape_n and_o 〈◊〉_d into_o li●●_n ●f_o i_o say_v we_o 〈…〉_o of_o the_o lord_n why_o then_o do_v we_o a●_z yet_o be_v 〈◊〉_d for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o dead_a pray_v and_o make_v supplication_n for_o they_o as_o though_o they_o have_v not_o yet_o obtain_v salvation_n ▪_o by_o these_o our_o prayer_n true_o we_o give_v a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o we_o doubt_v of_o our_o faith_n &_o hope_v not_o after_o that_o as_o concern_v the_o salvation_n of_o our_o foul_n which_o wedge_n ●●th_v profess_v with_o tongue_n and_o which_o also_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n command_v we_o to_o hope_v after_o the_o steadfast_a faith_n true_o and_o assure_a hope_n of_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o stay_v themselves_o upon_o the_o promise_n of_o christ_n d●_z forbid_v we_o here_o to_o take_v and_o wear_v black_a mourn_a garment_n in_o offering_n for_o the_o dead_a who_o soul_n we_o believe_v to_o have_v already_o put_v on_o white_a garment_n they_o forbid_v we_o to_o give_v occasion_n either_o to_o unbeliever_n or_o to_o weakling_n in_o faith_n of_o reprehend_v we_o worthy_o because_o we_o 〈◊〉_d and_o lament_v for_o they_o who_o 〈◊〉_d say_v do_v live_v with_o god_n as_o if_o they_o be_v ●ast_v into_o hell_n fire_n and_o busy_o set_v ourselves_o a_o work_n with_o make_v humble_a prayer_n unto_o god_n to_o deliver_v the_o miserable_a soul_n out_o of_o torment_n that_o be_v to_o say_v because_o the_o faith_n which_o we_o profess_v with_o tongue_n and_o voice_n we_o condemn_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o ●ure_a heart_n and_o mind_n yea_o and_o of_o our_o outward_a work_n if_o we_o go_v on_o after_o this_o sort_n true_o we_o be_v double_a dealer_n in_o our_o hope_n and_o in_o our_o faith_n the_o thing_n which_o we_o speak_v seem_v to_o be_v dissemble_v false_a and_o feign_v for_o it_o avail_v nothing_o in_o word_n to_o ●●●nt_v of_o virtue_n and_o with_o deed_n to_o destroy_v truth_n therefore_o let_v he_o that_o will_v receive_v this_o 〈…〉_o as_o they_o ca●●_n it_o of_o the_o apostle_n touch_v the_o offering_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o faithful_a departe●_n as_o for_o i_o i_o mean_v to_o receive_v nothing_o repugnant_a to_o true_a ●ayth_n and_o 〈◊〉_d from_o the_o apostle_n doctri●e_v 〈◊〉_d do_v i_o persuade_v any_o man_n to_o rece●●●_n such_o ●anitie_n this_o also_o i_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o tell_v you_o that_o that_o which_o they_o call_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n s._n augustine_n call_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o father_n re●●ived_v of_o the_o church_n for_o in_o his_o 〈◊〉_d 〈…〉_o apost●li_fw-it 32._o he_o say_v this_o which_o the_o father_n deliver_v the_o whole_a church_n observe_v to_o wit_n that_o prayer_n shall_v be_v make_v for_o they_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n when_o they_o in_o their_o own_o place_n be_v rehearse_v at_o the_o very_a sacrifice_n and_o the_o same_o be_v mention_v to_o be_v offer_v for_o they_o also_o and_o again_o 〈…〉_o gerend●_n cap._n 4._o he_o say_v supplication_n or_o prayer_n for_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v which_o the_o church_n have_v receive_v to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o that_o be_v depart_v in_o the_o christian_a brotherhod_n not_o rehearse_v they_o by_o name_n but_o in_o a_o general_a remembrance_n of_o they_o altogether_o thus_o sa●e_z he_o ▪_o who_o though_o in_o some_o place_n he_o 〈◊〉_d the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n very_o say_v yet_o by_o these_o word_n this_o séemethmore_o express_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n y_fw-fr this_o 〈◊〉_d or_o order_n of_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o father_n and_o doubtless_o many_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v receive_v of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o august_n defend_v in_o more_o place_n than_o one_o that_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v as_o necessary_a for_o infant_n be_v new_a come_v forth_o of_o their_o mother_n womb_n to_o you_o attain_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n the_o chief_a and_o notable_a place_n wherein_o ●e_a hand_n ●●th_v 〈…〉_o in_o his_o first_o book_n against_o 〈…〉_o his_o 〈…〉_o against_o y_fw-es pelagian_n nether_a do_v he_o 〈◊〉_d that_o opinion_n with_o less_o 〈…〉_o than_o the_o tradition_n ▪_o because_o that_o 〈…〉_o and_o very_o usual_a in_o the_o church_n in_o y_fw-es age_n but_o who_o at_o this_o day_n receive_v y_fw-fr ceremony_n as_o apostolical_a who_o see_v not_o that_o those_o good_a father_n otherwise_o most_o faithful_a pastor_n in_o that_o thing_n suffer_v some_o invention_n of_o man_n the_o write_a doctrine_n of_o s._n paul_n deserve_v at_o this_o day_n more_o to_o be_v esteem_v than_o that_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n paul_n write_v let_v every_o man_n 11._o 〈◊〉_d himself_o and_o so_o let_v he_o eat●_n of_o this_o ●●eade_n and_o drink_v of_o this_o cap._n whereby_o all_o man_n understand_v that_o you_o eucharist_n or_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v for_o they_o to_o receive_v that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n &_o not_o 〈…〉_o for_o y_fw-es cau●●_n it_o 〈…〉_o for_o our_o elder_n &_o to_o forsake_v in_o tradition_n and_o to_o draw_v more_o near_o to_o the_o scripture_n let_v they_o therefore_o in_o this_o m●tter_n give_v we_o 〈◊〉_d also_o to_o depart_v from_o the_o uncertain_a tradition_n of_o the_o father_n &_o to_o clean_o to_o the_o most_o 〈◊〉_d faith_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o 〈◊〉_d say_v they_o be_v condemn_v for_o this_o cause_n for_o that_o he_o believe_v prayer_n condemn_v be_v unprofitable_a for_o the_o dead_a i_o 〈◊〉_d in_o 〈◊〉_d in_o aerius_n be_v condemn_v neither_o do_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o defend_v he_o who_o ●hylastrius_fw-la epiphanius_n &_o augustine_n do_v make_v mention_n to_o have_v 〈…〉_o arian_n &_o a_o man_n pollute_v with_o other_o ●oule_a error_n but_o touch_v prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a whether_o they_o be_v profitable_a or_o unprofitable_a there_o be_v no_o doubt_n that_o they_o be_v catholic_n &_o notheretique_n who_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v deliver_v &_o ●et_v down_o in_o the_o apostle_n cré_z for_o according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o this_o creed_n we_o believe_v the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n 〈…〉_o life_n everlasting_a they_o which_o beleèue_v these_o thing_n ●●tein_v undouted_o what_o so●●er_n they_o believe_v for_o the_o lord_n say_v to_o the_o cont●●ion_n go_v thy_o way_n and_o as_z tho●_n 〈…〉_o so_o be_v it_o do_v unto_o 8._o th●●_n therefore_o who_o so_o ever_o believe_v forgiveness_n of_o sin●_n &_o life_n everlasting_a have_v obtain_v forgiveness_n of_o sin_n &_o surly_a he_o shall_v live_v in_o everlasting_a life_n which_o thing_n if_o you_o be_v true_a as_o it_o can_v be_v false_a whith_z be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n what_o place_n i_o pray_v you_o shall_v prayer_n
jesus_n through_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o same_o apostle_n say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v come_v 10._o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n since_o there_o before_o faith_n come_v by_o herring_n &_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o special_o man_n by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o church_n true_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n spring_n or_o be_v build_v by_o the_o decree_n &_o doctrine_n of_o man_n therefore_o we_o affirm_v that_o only_o the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v apt_a for_o the_o build_n up_o of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n man_n doctrine_n set_v up_o man_n church_n but_o christ_n word_n build_v the_o christian_a church_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o man_n proceed_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n but_o peter_n confess_v christ_n with_o a_o pure_a faith_n and_o therefore_o ground_v upon_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n hear_v these_o word_n of_o christ_n himself_o flesh_n and_o blood_n 16._o have_v not_o reveal_v these_o thing_n unto_o thou_o but_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o therefore_o paul_n say_v when_o it_o please_v god_n that_o i_o shall_v preach_v his_o 1._o son_n among_o the_o gentile_n i_o confer_v not_o of_o the_o matter_n with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n etc_n etc_n he_o also_o most_o manifest_o abolish_n all_o doctrine_n of_o man_n from_o the_o set_v up_o &_o build_v of_o faith_n and_o the_o church_n &_o only_o commend_v the_o word_n of_o god_n say_v to_o the_o corinthian_n my_o word_n and_o preach_v stand_v not_o in_o the_o 2._o entice_a speech_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o plain_a evidence_n of_o the_o spirit_n &_o of_o power_n that_o your_o faith_n shall_v not_o be_v in_o the_o wisdom_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god._n to_o this_o now_o pertain_v these_o testimony_n of_o christ_n he_o that_o be_v of_o god_n hear_v god_n word_n again_o ●_o he_o that_o be_v of_o the_o truth_n will_v hear_v my_o 1●_o voice_n and_o again_o more_o plain_o he_o 10._o say_v the_o sheep_n will_v follow_v the_o shepherd_n because_o they_o know_v his_o voice_n they_o will_v not_o follow_v a_o stranger_n but_o will_v run_v away_o from_o he_o because_o they_o know_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n but_o under_o the_o voice_n of_o stranger_n we_o include_v all_o tradition_n and_o decree_n of_o man_n differ_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o which_o tradition_n the_o apostle_n s._n paul_n do_v attribute_v the_o shape_n of_o wisdom_n 2._o but_o the_o truth_n he_o deny_v they_o &_o cale_v 1._o they_o superstitious_a for_o our_o lord_n himself_o in_o the_o gospel_n bring_v forth_o of_o the_o prophet_n esaie_n the_o immutable_a say_n they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a teach_v 15._o for_o doctrine_n man_n precept_n let_v we_o therefore_o hold_v that_o the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o build_v by_o man_n decree_n but_o you_o she_o be_v found_v plant_v gather_v together_o &_o build_v only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n we_o do_v add_v that_o it_o be_v out_o of_o doubt_n y_fw-es god._n the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v preserve_v by_o the_o same_o word_n of_o god_n least_o at_o any_o time_n it_o shall_v be_v seduce_v or_o lest_o it_o shall_v slip_v &_o perish_v &_o y_fw-fr neither_o can_v it_o at_o any_o time_n be_v preserve_v by_o any_o other_o mean_n paul_n again_o witness_v and_o say_v christ_n have_v give_v some_o to_o be_v apostle_n &_o some_o prophet_n &_o some_o euamgelist_n 4._o some_o pastor_n &_o teacher_n for_o the_o gather_v together_o of_o the_o saint_n for_o the_o work_n of_o the_o ministry_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o teach_v &_o preach_v the_o word_n &_o for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v together_o in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n unto_o a_o perfect_a man_n &_o unto_o the_o measure_n of_o the_o age_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n that_o we_o henceforth_o be_v no_o more_o child_n waver_v &_o carry_v about_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n by_o the_o deceit_n of_o man_n mark_n i_o pray_v how_o man_n doctrine_n be_v condemn_v again_o with_o great_a &_o inviolable_a authority_n &_o with_o craftiness_n whereby_o they_o lie_v in_o wait_n to_o deceive_v but_o let_v we_o follow_v the_o truth_n in_o love_n &_o in_o all_o thing_n grow_v up_o into_o he_o which_o be_v the_o head_n that_o be_v christ_n by_o who_o all_o the_o body_n be_v couple_v and_o knit_v together_o by_o every_o joint_a for_o the_o furniture_n thereof_o according_a to_o the_o effectual_a power_n which_o be_v in_o the_o measure_n of_o every_o part_n receive_v increase_v of_o the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o in_o love_n increase_v the_o body_n unto_o the_o edify_n of_o itself_o through_o love_n these_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v so_o plain_a that_o they_o need_v no_o better_a exposition_n than_o they_o have_v of_o then selue_o in_o this_o place_n also_o the_o order_n &_o manner_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o preach_v of_o god_n word_n shall_v of_o right_o be_v set_v down_o which_o many_o do_v term_n &_o call_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n or_o of_o the_o church_n but_o we_o will_v speak_v of_o the_o god_n will_v in_o the_o three_o sermon_n it_o shall_v be_v sufficient_a in_o this_o place_n to_o defend_v that_o our_o lord_n god_n have_v give_v doctor_n unto_o the_o church_n do_v find_v build_v maintain_v &_o enlarge_v the_o church_n by_o his_o word_n yea_o by_o his_o word_n only_o there_o come_v two_o thing_n now_o to_o be_v consider_v first_o that_o the_o church_n of_o good_a for_o y_fw-es continual_a and_o constant_a study_n of_o the_o word_n church_n of_o god_n be_v call_v prophetical_a &_o apostolical_a you_o &_o also_o orthodoxical_a for_o it_o be_v call_v prophetical_a or_o apostolical_a because_o by_o y_fw-fr travel_v of_o the_o prophet_n &_o apostle_n it_o be_v first_o build_v &_o by_o their_o doctrine_n be_v preserve_v even_o at_o this_o time_n &_o shall_v by_o it_o be_v spread_v abroad_o even_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n it_o be_v call_v orthodoxical_a because_o it_o be_v sound_a of_o judgement_n opinion_n &_o faith_n for_o without_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n neither_o any_o perfect_a doctrine_n touch_v true_a virtue_n &_o felicity_n the_o faith_n &_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v reveal_v from_o god_n himself_o by_o adam_n &_o the_o patriarch_n by_o moses_n &_o the_o prophet_n by_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n whereby_o she_o elsewhere_o be_v name_v a_o mother_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v in_o the_o next_o sermon_n secondary_o that_o the_o succession_n of_o bishop_n doctor_n or_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n do_v prove_v nothing_o of_o itself_o without_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o champion_n &_o defender_n of_o the_o papistical_a church_n do_v boast_v that_o they_o have_v a_o most_o certain_a mark_n of_o the_o apostolic_a church_n to_o wit_n in_o y_fw-es continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n come_v from_o s._n peter_n by_o clement_n the_o first_o &_o so_o to_o clement_n y_fw-fr 7._o &_o to_o paul_n y_fw-es 3._o who_o die_v of_o late_a &_o so_o continue_v to_o julius_n y_fw-fr 3._o not_o long_o ago_o create_v moreover_o they_o add_v that_o all_o such_o member_n be_v cut_v off_o as_o do_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n in_o that_o which_o only_a that_o apostolical_a succession_n be_v find_v and_o we_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o right_a succession_n of_o pastor_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v of_o great_a weit_fw-mi for_o they_o which_o then_o be_v call_v pastor_n be_v pastor_n in_o deed_n &_o execute_v the_o office_n of_o pastor_n but_o what_o manner_n of_o pastor_n they_o have_v be_v a_o great_a many_o year_n which_o of_o the_o rout_n of_o cardinal_n mitre_a bishop_n &_o sophister_n have_v be_v call_v pastor_n none_o be_v ignorant_a but_o he_o which_o be_v altogether_o without_o any_o understanding_n the_o prophet_n zacharie_n hear_v these_o word_n speak_v to_o he_o from_o that_o lord_n take_v to_o thou_o yet_o the_o instrument_n of_o a_o foolish_a shepherd_n for_o lo_o i_o will_v raise_v 11._o up_o a_o shepherd_n in_o the_o land_n which_o shall_v not_o look_v for_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v lose_v nor_o seek_v the_o tender_a lamb_n nor_o heal_v that_o that_o be_v hurt_v nor_o feed_v that_o that_o stand_v up_o but_o he_o shall_v eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o fat_a and_o tear_v their_o hoof_n in_o piece_n woe_n be_v to_o the_o idle_a shepherd_n that_o forsake_v the_o flock_n etc_n etc_n therefore_o never_o a_o whit_n more_o do_v these_o man_n prove_v by_o their_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n who_o teach_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n sincere_o nor_o execute_v the_o
plebani_n that_o be_v priest_n appoint_v for_o the_o people_n who_o only_o represent_v some_o shadow_n of_o the_o old_a institution_n in_o this_o that_o they_o preach_v and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n which_o nevertheless_o you_o can_v allow_v because_o they_o minister_v they_o after_o popish_a tradition_n and_o not_o after_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o many_o other_o thing_n they_o do_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o office_n which_o godliness_n by_o all_o mean_n do_v disallow_v there_o be_v add_v unto_o these_o hireling_n helper_n or_o vicar_n there_o be_v also_o join_v unto_o these_o sacellani_n who_o they_o call_v chaplain_n of_o who_o there_o be_v a_o exceed_a number_n these_o even_o as_o the_o monkish_a priest_n do_v account_v the_o chief_a part_n of_o their_o duty_n to_o be_v say_v over_o their_o hour_n but_o especial_o in_o mass_v as_o for_o doctrine_n they_o attribute_v nothing_o to_o it_o for_o of_o this_o company_n you_o shall_v find_v some_o who_o never_o in_o all_o their_o life_n make_v one_o sermon_n for_o the_o charge_n of_o preach_v they_o commit_v only_o to_o their_o parish_n priest_n and_o their_o vicar_n they_o serve_v those_o god_n to_o who_o their_o altar_n or_o their_o chapel_n be_v consecrate_v etc_n etc_n by_o all_o which_o thing_n even_o unto_o blind_a man_n it_o plain_o appear_v how_o shameful_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o minister_n or_o pastor_n be_v corrupt_v and_o turn_v upside_o down_o they_o set_v over_o the_o priest_n archprieste_n i_o have_v use_v archeprieste_n that_o word_n in_o my_o preface_n or_o epistle_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o first_o decade_n and_o i_o hear_v that_o some_o brethren_n be_v offend_v at_o it_o as_o though_o there_o stick_v some_o piece_n of_o popish_a leaven_n still_o about_o we_o or_o as_o though_o we_o think_v to_o bring_v in_o again_o some_o unworthy_a dignity_n into_o the_o church_n but_o i_o will_v not_o have_v those_o brethren_n to_o fear_v with_o we_o there_o be_v no_o popish_a archpriest_n neither_o understand_v i_o any_o popish_a dignity_n by_o that_o word_n but_o the_o office_n of_o overséeinge_v which_o other_o call_v visit_v for_o they_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o all_o degree_n in_o our_o country_n in_o admonish_v and_o correct_v they_o have_v no_o prelacy_n or_o superiority_n they_o reap_v no_o reward_n thereby_o etc_n etc_n but_o we_o return_v to_o our_o purpose_n they_o derive_v priest_n or_o sacrificer_n from_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n who_o it_o bishop_n be_v read_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o lord_n do_v choose_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n from_o peter_n himself_o and_o the_o residue_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o immediate_o they_o divide_v the_o order_n of_o bishop_n into_o three_o part_n name_o patriarch_n archishop_n and_o bishop_n they_o account_v the_o patriarch_n the_o father_n of_o prince_n or_o high_a father_n and_o they_o also_o they_o call_v primate_n and_o primate_n say_v they_o have_v authority_n over_o three_o archbishop_n as_o a_o king_n also_o have_v authority_n over_o three_o duke_n here_o i_o think_v cardinal_n have_v their_o place_n in_o who_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v turn_v as_o a_o gate_n upon_o the_o hinge_n for_o in_o the_o decretal_n of_o gregory_n de_fw-fr officio_fw-la archip._n it_o be_v thus_o read_v cardinal_n have_v their_o name_n a_o cardine_n that_o be_v of_o the_o hindg_n of_o a_o gate_n for_o as_o by_o the_o hindg_n the_o gate_n be_v rule_v so_o by_o cardinal_n the_o universal_a church_n be_v govern_v archbishop_n be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o prince_n of_o bishop_n they_o be_v also_o surname_v metropolitan_n because_o they_o have_v their_o government_n in_o the_o chief_a city_n in_o very_a deed_n metropolis_n with_o the_o greek_n be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o mother_n city_n from_o whence_o colony_n be_v deduct_v that_o be_v people_n be_v send_v out_o to_o inhabit_v some_o new_a place_n whereupon_o he_o be_v call_v the_o metropolitan_a bishop_n who_o govern_v some_o one_o province_n and_o have_v other_o bishop_n under_o he_o and_o these_o be_v call_v both_o bishop_n chief_a priest_n and_o presul_n but_o if_o you_o compare_v all_o these_o thing_n with_o that_o which_o i_o say_v before_o of_o the_o bishop_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n you_o will_v say_v there_o be_v very_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o but_o that_o bishop_n which_o they_o write_v touch_v the_o pope_n or_o chief_a bishop_n be_v far_o from_o the_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o euamgelist_n and_o from_o the_o first_o ordain_v of_o minister_n make_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n all_o those_o bishop_n say_v they_o our_o most_o holy_a lord_n the_o pope_n do_v excel_v in_o dignity_n and_o power_n who_o be_v call_v pope_n that_o be_v the_o father_n of_o father_n he_o be_v also_o call_v universal_a because_o he_o be_v chief_a of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o he_o be_v also_o call_v apostolical_a and_o the_o chief_a bishop_n because_o he_o supply_v the_o room_n of_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n for_o he_o be_v melchizedec●_n who_o priesthood_n other_o be_v not_o to_o be_v compare_v unto_o because_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o bishop_n from_o who_o they_o descend_v as_o member_n from_o the_o head_n and_o of_o who_o power_n they_o all_o do_v receive_v who_o he_o call_v to_o be_v partaker_n of_o his_o care_n and_o burden_n but_o not_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o fullness_n of_o power_n they_o therefore_o define_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n in_o earth_n and_o the_o only_a universal_a shepherd_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n who_o can_v err_v nether_a aught_o to_o be_v judge_v of_o any_o man_n for_o they_o say_v he_o be_v the_o judge_n of_o all_o man_n have_v absolute_a power_n for_o thus_o say_v innocent_a the_o 9_o pope_n in_o his_o third_o quest_n neither_o of_o the_o emperor_n neither_o of_o all_o the_o clergy_n neither_o of_o king_n nor_o of_o the_o people_n ought_v the_o judge_n to_o be_v judge_v upon_o which_o place_n he_o that_o write_v the_o gloss_n write_v thus_o a_o general_a counsel_n can_v judge_v the_o pope_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o extravagant_n in_o the_o title_n of_o election_n cap._n significasti_fw-la therefore_o if_o the_o whole_a world_n shall_v pronounce_v sentence_n in_o any_o matter_n against_o the_o pope_n it_o seem_v that_o we_o must_v stand_v to_o the_o pope_n judgement_n hereunto_o pertain_v those_o common_a ground_n of_o the_o clawback_n flatter_v layer_n of_o the_o pope_n court_n very_o plausible_a and_o authentical_a that_o all_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v of_o all_o man_n as_o if_o they_o proceed_v from_o the_o very_a mouth_n of_o peter_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v great_a than_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v all_o and_o above_o all_o that_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n have_v one_o consistory_n which_o thing_n also_o hostien_n affirm_v in_o c._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-la transl_n prael_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v be_v bring_v into_o order_n by_o any_o man_n though_o he_o be_v account_v a_o heretic_n that_o he_o have_v supreme_a power_n neither_o have_v he_o any_o fellow_n that_o he_o have_v all_o law_n within_o his_o breast_n that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a counsel_n where_o the_o pope_n be_v that_o he_o have_v all_o law_n in_o his_o breast_n that_o he_o have_v both_o sword_n whereby_o he_o may_v right_o be_v call_v a_o emperor_n yea_o that_o he_o be_v above_o the_o emperor_n that_o he_o only_o can_v depose_v the_o emperor_n and_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o be_v of_o no_o effect_n that_o he_o only_o may_v spare_v who_o emperor_n he_o will_v and_o may_v also_o take_v away_o the_o right_n of_o one_o man_n and_o give_v it_o to_o another_o and_o final_o may_v take_v away_o privilege_n to_o be_v short_a they_o say_v he_o be_v lord_n of_o lord_n and_o have_v the_o right_a of_o the_o king_n of_o king_n over_o his_o subject_n yea_o and_o also_o have_v fullness_n of_o power_n over_o the_o temporal_a thing_n in_o earth_n yea_o and_o also_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v the_o pope_n diocese_n wherein_o he_o be_v the_o ordinary_a of_o all_o man_n and_o it_o stand_v upon_o the_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n that_o every_o man_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hereunto_o for_o conclusion_n i_o will_v add_v the_o word_n of_o the_o glosser_n who_o say_v in_o ca._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-fr transl_n episcopi_fw-la tit._n 7._o the_o pope_n say_v he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v a_o heavenly_a power_n and_o therefore_o he_o alter_v the_o very_a nature_n of_o thing_n by_o apply_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v of_o the_o substance_n of_o one_o thing_n unto_o another_o and_o of_o nothing_o he_o can_v make_v something_o and_o that_o sentence_n which_o
yet_o able_a to_o confess_v believer_n because_o he_o repute_v they_o of_o his_o grace_n for_o believer_n neither_o be_v this_o any_o wonder_n or_o strange_a thing_n since_o god_n yea_o to_o they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n impute_v faith_n for_o righteousness_n for_o in_o all_o point_v righteousness_n acceptation_n or_o sanctification_n be_v free_a and_o imputative_a that_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n may_v be_v praise_v furthermore_o his_o will_n be_v that_o little_a one_o shall_v not_o be_v despise_v much_o less_o to_o be_v cast_v out_o among_o the_o number_n of_o the_o saint_n yea_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o angel_n be_v give_v unto_o they_o to_o be_v their_o keeper_n who_o though_o they_o be_v minister_n of_o god_n majesty_n yet_o the_o self_n same_o be_v give_v and_o grant_v to_o little_a child_n to_o be_v their_o guard_n so_o that_o hereby_o we_o may_v judge_v what_o great_a store_n the_o lord_n set_v by_o infant_n and_o learn_v not_o to_o wipe_v they_o out_o of_o the_o skoare_z of_o god_n people_n to_o who_o the_o inheritance_n of_o life_n be_v due_a we_o attribute_v nothing_o here_o to_o the_o birth_n which_o be_v after_o the_o flesh_n but_o all_o thing_n to_o the_o grace_n and_o promise_v of_o god_n now_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o all_o these_o testimony_n that_o as_o well_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v to_o be_v baptize_v as_o also_o those_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n confess_v the_o faith_n now_o on_o the_o contrary_a part_n the_o anabaptist_n do_v contend_v that_o none_o baptize_v be_v to_o be_v baptize_v but_o he_o alone_o which_o both_o be_v able_a to_o be_v teach_v and_o to_o believe_v yea_o and_o to_o make_v confession_n of_o his_o faith_n also_o and_o for_o confirmation_n of_o this_o thing_n they_o bring_v these_o say_n of_o our_o saviour_n out_o of_o saint_n matthew_n go_v you_o therefore_o and_o teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n etc_n etc_n out_o of_o mark_n go●_n you_o into_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o all_o creature_n he_o which_o shall_v believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v etc_n etc_n behold_v say_v they_o teach_v go_v before_o baptism_n therefore_o they_o that_o be_v notable_a to_o be_v teach_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v furthermore_o to_o believe_v go_v before_o and_o to_o baptise_v follow_v after_o infant_n do_v not_o believe_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v upon_o all_o these_o they_o heap_v up_o out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n example_n which_o prove_v that_o the_o faithful_a that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o that_o confess_v the_o faith_n be_v baptize_v of_o the_o apostle_n they_o reckon_v up_o also_o the_o new_o instruct_v christian_n of_o the_o old_a time_n to_o who_o say_v they_o there_o have_v be_v no_o place_n give_v if_o they_o have_v baptize_v infant_n i_o answer_v if_o the_o order_n of_o the_o word_n make_v anything_o in_o this_o matter_n we_o also_o have_v in_o a_o readiness_n to_o serve_v our_o turn_n for_o in_o mark_n thus_o we_o read_v john_n baptize_v in_o the_o desert_n preach_v the_o baptism_n of_o repentance_n in_o which_o place_n we_o see_v that_o to_o baptise_v go_v before_o to_o preach_v follow_v after_o yea_o i_o will_v show_v also_o that_o that_o place_n which_o they_o allege_v out_o of_o matthew_n for_o themselves_o make_v also_o for_o we_o for_o matthewes_n word_n be_v these_o all_o power_n be_v give_v unto_o i_o both_o in_o heaven_n 28._o and_o in_o earth_n say_v the_o lord_n go_v therefore_o &_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d that_o be_v to_o say_v discipulate_v that_o i_o may_v so_o speak_v that_o be_v make_v you_o i_o disciple_n or_o gather_v together_o all_o nation_n yea_o he_o teach_v they_o also_o the_o way_n &_o mean_n how_o to_o gather_v disciple_n unto_o he_o out_o of_o all_o nation_n or_o all_o nation_n by_o baptise_v &_o teach_v they_o by_o baptise_v and_o preach_v ●e_n shall_v gather_v i_o together_o a_o church_n and_o he_o set_v out_o both_o of_o they_o several_o one_o after_o a_o other_o sweet_o and_o short_o say_v baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v they_o to_o observe_v all_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v command_v you_o now_o therefore_o baptism_n go_v before_o teach_v but_o we_o do_v not_o thereby_o gather_v that_o those_o nation_n which_o never_o hear_v any_o thing_n before_o of_o god_n and_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v to_o be_v baptize_v neither_o will_v the_o apostle_n have_v bear_v that_o but_o we_o allege_v these_o thing_n to_o declare_v upon_o how_o fickle_a a_o foundation_n the_o anabaptist_n do_v build_v and_o we_o simple_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o true_a which_o these_o man_n imagine_v that_o the_o lord_n command_v his_o apostle_n to_o baptise_v they_o only_o who_o they_o teach_v neither_o do_v he_o here_o point_v out_o who_o be_v to_o be_v baptize_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n and_o of_o lay_v the_o first_o foundation_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o church_n among_o the_o gentile_n be_v rude_a as_o yet_o and_o ignorant_a altogether_o in_o religion_n they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n be_v able_a to_o bear_v preach_v or_o teach_v infant_n be_v not_o so_o they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n be_v able_a to_o believe_v and_o confess_v infant_n be_v not_o so_o therefore_o he_o speak_v nothing_o here_o of_o infant_n yet_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o debar_v from_o baptism_n it_o be_v a_o general_a law_n he_o which_o do_v not_o labour_n let_v he_o not_o eat_v but_o who_o be_v so_o cruel_a and_o unnatural_a to_o think_v that_o therefore_o infant_n be_v to_o be_v famish_v to_o death_n the_o lord_n when_o true_a religion_n begin_v to_o be_v spread_v abroad_o send_v his_o apostle_n into_o all_o nation_n unto_o they_o which_o both_o be_v ignorant_a of_o god_n and_o stranger_n from_o the_o testament_n of_o god_n true_o it_o behove_v they_o not_o first_o to_o baptise_v and_o afterward_o to_o teach_v but_o first_o to_o teach_v and_o then_o to_o baptise_v if_o at_o this_o day_n we_o shall_v go_v to_o 〈◊〉_d or_o turn_v the_o turk_n to_o the_o say_v of_o christ_n first_o true_o we_o shall_v ●eache_v they_o afterward_o baptise_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o those_o that_o will_v yield_v themselves_o into_o his_o subjection_n so_o the_o lord_n himself_o in_o time_n pass_v also_o first_o renew_v his_o covenant_n with_o abraham_n himself_o and_o institute_v circumcision_n for_o a_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n and_o after_o that_o abraham_n be_v circumcise_v but_o he_o himself_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o infant_n also_o be_v partaker_n in_o the_o covenant_n and_o that_o circumcision_n be_v the_o seal_n of_o the_o covenant_n he_o afterward_o do_v not_o only_o circumcise_v ishmael_n be_v thirteen_o year_n of_o age_n and_o all_o that_o be_v bear_v in_o his_o own_o house_n but_o infant_n also_o among_o who_o we_o reckon_v isaad_v also_o even_o so_o the_o faithful_a which_o be_v turn_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n from_o gentilism_n and_o confess_v be_v baptize_v when_o they_o understand_v that_o their_o infant_n be_v count_v among_o the_o people_n of_o god_n and_o that_o baptism_n be_v the_o badge_n of_o god_n people_n they_o cause_v also_o their_o infant_n to_o be_v baptize_v as_o therefore_o it_o be_v write_v of_o abraham_n he_o circumcise_v all_o the_o menchildren_n in_o his_o house_n so_o we_o oftentimes_o read_v in_o the_o act_n and_o write_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o after_o the_o master_n of_o the_o house_n be_v turn_v the_o whole_a family_n be_v baptize_v but_o as_o concern_v the_o new_o instruct_v christian_n they_o come_v in_o the_o old_a time_n from_o the_o gentile_n daily_a unto_o the_o church_n who_o these_o do_v instruct_v in_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v ignorant_a therein_o and_o afterward_o baptize_v they_o but_o the_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o nevertheless_o baptize_v also_o the_o infant_n of_o the_o faithful_a which_o anon_o we_o will_v declare_v neither_o do_v they_o lawful_o gather_v when_o they_o conclude_v in_o this_o sort_n he_o which_o shall_v believe_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v shw_v infant_n do_v not_o believe_v therefore_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v for_o again_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o it_o be_v speak_v of_o they_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_v age_n as_o in_o matth._n and_o because_o he_o require_v faith_n and_o confession_n of_o faith_n of_o those_o that_o be_v of_o perfect_a age_n it_o do_v not_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o he_o require_v the_o same_o of_o infant_n for_o he_o account_v these_o as_o his_o
mingle_v with_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n the_o people_n be_v unite_v unto_o christ_n and_o the_o multitude_n of_o the_o believer_n be_v couple_v and_o join_v unto_o he_o in_o who_o they_o believe_v and_o thus_o in_o blessing_n the_o lord_n cup_n only_a water_n may_v not_o be_v offer_v neither_o in_o like_a sort_n may_v wine_n only_o for_o if_o any_o man_n offer_v only_a wine_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n begin_v to_o be_v without_o we_o but_o if_o it_o be_v water_n only_o then_o do_v the_o multitude_n begin_v to_o be_v without_o christ_n but_o when_o they_o be_v both_o mingle_v together_o and_o be_v join_v with_o a_o confuse_a mixture_n betwixt_o they_o them_z be_v there_o a_o heavenly_a &_o spiritual_a sacrament_n wrought_v by_o these_o word_n true_o do_v s._n cyprian_n show_v unto_o we_o a_o good_a mystery_n but_o why_o do_v we_o seek_v to_o be_v wise_a than_o christ_n and_o to_o mingle_v together_o more_o mystery_n than_o we_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o the_o holy_a scripture_n make_v mention_n of_o no_o water_n but_o rather_o report_v that_o the_o lord_n use_v nought_o else_o but_o mere_a wine_n for_o the_o lord_n say_v very_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o that_o henceforth_o i_o will_v drink_v no_o more_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n for_o he_o plain_o say_v not_o the_o wine_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n that_o herein_o we_o shall_v make_v no_o manner_n of_o mingle_v but_o what_o if_o that_o the_o holy_a martyr_n of_o god_n himself_o saint_n cyprian_n have_v labour_v by_o all_o the_o mean_n he_o may_v to_o show_v that_o the_o only_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v of_o the_o faithful_a in_o celebrate_v of_o the_o lord_n supper_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v of_o our_o lord_n christ_n himself_o and_o forasmuch_o as_o that_o testimony_n do_v make_v much_o to_o all_o this_o our_o treatise_n concern_v christ_n supper_n to_o be_v celebrate_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n i_o will_v recite_v it_o word_n for_o word_n out_o of_o the_o second_o epistle_n of_o the_o 3._o book_n of_o his_o epistle_n we_o must_v not_o christ_n say_v he_o depart_v in_o any_o respect_n from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o those_o thing_n that_o our_o master_n teach_v &_o do_v himself_o the_o scholar_n also_o ought_v to_o observe_v and_o do_v the_o bless_a apostle_n in_o another_o place_n speak_v more_o constant_o and_o stout_o say_v i_o marvel_v that_o you_o be_v so_o soon_o change_v from_o he_o that_o call_v you_o to_o grace_n unto_o another_o gospel_n which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o there_o bosom_n that_o trouble_v you_o &_o go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n howbeit_o if_o we_o ourselves_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n do_v preach_v unto_o you_o any_o other_o thing_n than_o that_o we_o have_v teach_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o so_o say_v i_o now_o again_o if_o any_o man_n preach_v any_o other_o thing_n unto_o you_o than_o that_o which_o you_o have_v receive_v let_v he_o be_v accurse_v since_o therefore_o neither_o the_o apostle_n himself_o neither_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n can_v preach_v or_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o christ_n himself_o once_o have_v teach_v and_o his_o apostle_n have_v preach_v i_o much_o marvel_v from_o whence_o this_o custom_n have_v grow_v that_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o some_o place_n water_n be_v offer_v in_o the_o lord_n cup_n which_o be_v take_v alone_a can_v express_v the_o lord_n blood_n and_o again_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n dear_o belove_a brother_n that_o any_o man_n shall_v think_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o certain_a man_n be_v to_o be_v follow_v if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o heretofore_o have_v suppose_v that_o water_n alone_o be_v to_o be_v offer_v in_o the_o lord_n ●up_n for_o it_o must_v be_v demand_v of_o they_o who_o they_o have_v follow_v herein_o for_o if_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v christ_n none_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v but_o christ_n doubtless_o then_o ought_v we_o to_o hearken_v unto_o &_o to_o do_v after_o that_o which_o christ_n have_v do_v and_o command_v to_o be_v do_v since_o he_o himself_o say_v in_o his_o gospel_n if_o you_o do_v that_o which_o i_o command_v you_o to_o do_v i_o will_v call_v you_o no_o long_o servant_n but_o friend_n and_o the_o christ_n alone_o shall_v be_v hear_v the_o father_n himself_o also_o witness_v from_o heaven_n say_v this_o be_v my_o well-beloved_a son_n in_o wh●●e_n i_o have_v delight_n hear_v he_o wherefore_o if_o only_a christ_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v we_o ought_v not_o to_o regard_v what_o any_o other_o before_o we_o have_v think_v meet_a for_o we_o to_o do_v but_o what_o christ_n do_v first_o who_o be_v before_o all_o other_o neither_o ought_v we_o in_o any_o case_n to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o man_n but_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n consider_v what_o the_o lord_n speak_v by_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n say_v they_o worship_v i_o in_o vain_a teach_v the_o commandment_n &_o doctrine_n of_o man_n and_o again_o the_o lord_n repeat_v the_o self_n same_o word_n in_o the_o gospel_n say_v you_o set_v god_n commandment_n aside_o to_o establish_v your_o own_o tradition_n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v he_o that_o shall_v break_v any_o one_o of_o the_o least_o of_o these_o commandment_n and_o shall_v on_o this_o sort_n teach_v man_n shall_v be_v account_v least_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o break_v the_o least_o of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n how_o much_o more_o heinous_a be_v it_o to_o break_v thing_n so_o great_a so_o weighty_a and_o so_o much_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n passion_n &_o the_o sacrament_n of_o our_o redemption_n or_o else_o to_o change_v it_o into_o any_o other_o order_n by_o man_n tradition_n than_o be_v institute_v by_o god_n and_o so_o forth_o as_o follow_v there_o be_v no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v of_o authority_n even_o against_o the_o author_n himself_o for_o neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o by_o the_o example_n of_o christ_n can_v it_o be_v prove_v that_o water_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o wine_n at_o the_o supper_n as_o for_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n which_o the_o author_n allege_v every_o man_n may_v perceive_v how_o little_o they_o make_v to_o the_o purpose_n yea_o that_o they_o be_v wrest_v from_o their_o natural_a meaning_n the_o gospel_n plain_o pronounce_v that_o the_o lord_n drink_v of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n unto_o his_o disciple_n and_o as_o often_o as_o paul_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o cup_n yet_o teach_v he_o in_o no_o place_n that_o water_n be_v mingle_v with_o the_o wine_n or_o that_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v mingle_v with_o it_o wherefore_o these_o waterman_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o that_o use_v water_n only_o in_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n be_v just_o condemn_v such_o as_o the_o martionite_n and_o t●●tianes_n be_v howbeit_o it_o be_v a_o indifferent_a matter_n whether_o you_o use_v r●d_v wine_n or_o white_a in_o the_o supper_n again_o why_o do_v not_o the_o lord_n deliver_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o supper_n ●upper_n unto_o we_o under_o one_o form_n of_o bread_n or_o wine_n only_o but_o rather_o under_o both_o kind_n the_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n by_o one_o consent_n suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n for_o that_o he_o will_v signify_v or_o rather_o testify_v unto_o we_o that_o he_o take_v both_o soul_n &_o flesh_n upon_o he_o and_o give_v the_o same_o for_o we_o and_o also_o have_v deliver_v our_o soul_n &_o flesh_n from_o everlasting_a destruction_n for_o although_o there_o be_v 2._o kind_n yet_o do_v they_o make_v but_o one_o sacrament_n and_o they_o may_v not_o be_v separate_v neither_o be_v their_o opinion_n of_o judgement_n to_o be_v allow_v of_o who_o of_o their_o own_o private_a or_o rather_o sacrilegious_a authority_n do_v corrupt_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n offer_v to_o the_o lay_v people_n which_o do_v communicate_v the_o one_o kind_n only_o of_o bread_n &_o grant_v to_o priest_n both_o kind_n &_o so_o challenge_v both_o kind_n to_o themselves_o only_o but_o paul_n the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o authority_n from_o the_o lord_n himself_o to_o admit_v all_o the_o faithful_a people_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o lord_n cup_n and_o therefore_o let_v these_o bold_a fellow_n consider_v from_o who_o they_o have_v receive_v commandment_n to_o put_v back_o the_o laiety_n and_o to_o forbid_v they_o the_o cup_n which_o by_o the_o lord_n our_o god_n be_v grant_v unto_o they_o for_o christ_n in_o plain_a word_n and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n foresee_v what_o shall_v come_v to_o pass_v in_o the_o church_n say_v
diligent_o teach_v all_o man_n to_o have_v a_o make_v special_a care_n that_o they_o contract_v matrimony_n devoute_o holy_o sober_o wise_o lawful_o and_o in_o the_o fear_n of_o god_n and_o that_o no_o evil_a disposition_n of_o covetousness_n desire_v of_o promotion_n or_o fleshly_a lust_n may_v lead_v and_o provoke_v they_o and_o that_o wedlock_n be_v not_o enter_v into_o otherwise_o than_o either_o the_o law_n of_o man_n or_o of_o god_n will_v permit_v and_o in_o this_o place_n we_o must_v consider_v of_o the_o degree_n of_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n of_o public_a honesty_n of_o the_o reverence_n of_o blood_n of_o offence_n towards_o other_o and_o that_o no_o man_n take_v unto_o wife_n a_o heathen_a woman_n or_o one_o that_o be_v of_o a_o contrarne_a religion_n for_o we_o be_v express_o forbid_v to_o yoke_v ourselves_o with_o the_o unbeliever_n again_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o knot_n of_o wedlock_n lawful_o godly_o 6._o and_o holy_o with_o prayer_n &_o the_o receipt_n of_o godly_a blessing_n in_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n both_o in_o the_o sight_n and_o with_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o whole_a congregation_n and_o to_o beware_v that_o in_o any_o case_n we_o be_v not_o stain_v in_o this_o point_n with_o all_o profanation_n of_o the_o filthy_a world_n neither_o be_v we_o ignorant_a in_o this_o case_n also_o that_o man_n of_o this_o world_n be_v common_o wont_a to_o celebrate_v their_o wedding_n more_o fit_n for_o the_o devil_n than_o god_n with_o riot_v pride_n surfeit_v drunkenness_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o wantonness_n moreover_o we_o be_v teach_v to_o dwell_v with_o our_o wife_n according_a 3._o to_o knowledge_n moderation_n patience_n faith_n and_o love_n and_o also_o to_o bring_v up_o our_o child_n virtuous_o and_o honest_o and_o they_o also_o to_o place_n and_o bestow_v when_o time_n require_v in_o holy_a wedlock_n but_o if_o for_o adultery_n divorcement_n or_o some_o other_o matter_n more_o heinous_a than_o that_o necessity_n force_v to_o break_v wedlock_n yet_o in_o this_o case_n the_o church_n will_v do_v nothing_o unadui●edly_o for_o she_o have_v her_o judge_n who_o will_v judge_v in_o matter_n and_o cause_n of_o matrimony_n according_a to_o right_n and_o equity_n or_o rather_o according_a to_o god_n law_n and_o the_o rule_n of_o honesty_n the_o holy_a apostle_n will_v not_o have_v the_o faithful_a to_o 6._o contend_v and_o stand_v in_o law_n in_o the_o court_n of_o the_o unfaithful_a wherefore_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o take_v umpier_n to_o make_v agréement_n friendly_a betwixt_o they_o that_o be_v in_o contention_n but_o in_o cause_n and_o matter_n of_o matrimony_n there_o be_v far_o great_a matter_n that_o forbid_v the_o party_n that_o sue_v or_o be_v sue_v to_o come_v before_o unbelieving_a judge_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v very_o well_o appoint_v a_o court_n to_o try_v matter_n of_o matrimony_n but_o because_o we_o speak_v of_o wedlock_n in_o the_o ten_o sermon_n of_o the_o second_o decade_n &_o also_o have_v set_v forth_o sometime_o a_o book_n special_o concern_v the_o same_o i_o have_v knit_v up_o this_o matter_n in_o these_o few_o word_n touch_v christian_n wedlock_n the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v widow_n in_o it_o but_o such_o as_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n widower_n do_v describe_v in_o this_o sort_n say_v she_o that_o be_v a_o widow_n and_o a_o lone_a woman_n in_o deed_n trust_v in_o god_n and_o continue_v in_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n night_n and_o day_n but_o she_o that_o live_v in_o pleasure_n and_o delight_n be_v dead_a though_o she_o be_v alive_a the_o same_o paul_n do_v will_n the_o young_a sort_n to_o marry_v to_o get_v child_n and_o to_o govern_v the_o house_n neither_o to_o give_v any_o occasion_n at_o all_o for_o the_o enemy_n to_o speak_v evil_a of_o they_o the_o place_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o first_o epistle_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o timothy_n the_o five_o chapter_n the_o church_n also_o have_v virgin_n these_o be_v careful_a only_o for_o those_o thing_n virgin_n that_o long_o unto_o the_o lord_n &_o be_v true_a virgin_n without_o all_o deceit_n or_o hypocrisy_n paul_n say_v a_o virgin_n care_v for_o that_o that_o belong_v to_o god_n that_o she_o may_v be_v holy_a both_o in_o body_n &_o spirit_n there_o be_v many_o that_o rule_n and_o govern_v their_o body_n but_o not_o their_o mind_n god_n require_v both_o and_o especial_o of_o the_o mind_n it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o deceive_v man_n but_o we_o can_v by_o any_o mean_n deceive_v god_n s._n paul_n in_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinth_n the_o seven_o chapter_n set_v forth_o the_o praise_n of_o virginity_n and_o by_o compare_v a_o virgin_n to_o a_o marry_a wife_n he_o show_v how_o great_a the_o goodness_n of_o virginity_n be_v notwithstanding_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o virgin_n to_o marry_v if_o they_o will_v which_o thing_n the_o same_o apostle_n plain_o show_v in_o the_o self_n same_o place_n of_o scripture_n unto_o this_o testimony_n of_o god_n the_o testimony_n of_o man_n also_o be_v agreeable_a for_o cyprian_a with_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o elder_n make_v answer_n to_o a_o question_n demand_v by_o pomponius_n say_v do_v thou_o desire_v that_o we_o shall_v write_v unto_o thou_o what_o we_o think_v of_o those_o virgin_n who_o after_o that_o they_o once_o determine_v to_o continue_v their_o state_n continent_o and_o steadfast_o be_v find_v to_o have_v lie_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o bed_n with_o man_n concern_v which_o thing_n because_o thou_o do_v desire_v to_o know_v our_o judgement_n thou_o shall_v understand_v that_o we_o do_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o tradition_n and_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o apostle_n whereby_o we_o shall_v so_o much_o the_o less_o strong_o and_o stout_o provide_v for_o our_o brethren_n and_o sister_n and_o that_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n shall_v be_v keep_v by_o all_o mean_n for_o their_o profit_n and_o safety_n and_o it_o follow_v but_o if_o thoroughe_o faith_n they_o have_v vow_v unto_o christ_n and_o continue_v chaste_o &_o shamfast_o without_o lease_v let_v they_o steadfast_o and_o stout_o look_v for_o the_o reward_n of_o virginity_n but_o if_o they_o will_v not_o or_o can_v not_o continue_v it_o be_v better_a that_o they_o marry_v than_o to_o fall_v into_o the_o fire_n of_o their_o delight_n &_o pleasure_n and_o so_o forth_o s._n augustine_n dispute_v of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o 5_o great_a damnation_n because_o they_o break_v their_o first_o promise_n and_o faith_n ascribe_v not_o this_o damnation_n to_o the_o marriage_n follow_v but_o to_o the_o inconstancy_n go_v before_o such_o be_v damn_v say_v he_o not_o because_o they_o enter_v into_o the_o bond_n and_o promise_n of_o wedlock_n but_o because_o they_o break_v the_o first_o promise_n make_v of_o continency_n and_o chastity_n 9_o and_o a_o little_a after_o that_o he_o add_v these_o word_n they_o therefore_o that_o say_v such_o marriage_n be_v no_o marriage_n in_o deed_n but_o rather_o adultery_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o that_o they_o speak_v foolish_o and_o without_o consideration_n and_o thus_o much_o he_o i_o understand_v that_o by_o this_o word_n condemnation_n or_o judgement_n be_v man_n by_o the_o apostle_n reprehension_n which_o we_o swisser_n term_n ein_fw-mi anszricte●_n oder_fw-ge nachred_a for_o they_o be_v evil_a speak_v of_o by_o many_o for_o that_o they_o have_v break_v their_o first_o faith_n that_o be_v to_o say_v they_o have_v break_v the_o promise_n of_o continency_n wherefore_o the_o apostle_n think_v it_o much_o better_o for_o young_a woman_n to_o match_v themselves_o in_o marriage_n then_o to_o set_v down_o to_o themselves_o such_o a_o order_n of_o life_n from_o the_o which_o although_o necessity_n force_v they_o thereunto_o they_o can_v depart_v without_o reprehension_n of_o man_n but_o in_o that_o place_n he_o speak_v not_o of_o virgin_n but_o of_o widow_n saint_n cyprian_n speak_v simple_o of_o virgin_n monk_n and_o nonnes_n be_v altegether_o unknown_a in_o the_o primitive_a monk_n church_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n the_o latter_a age_n have_v monk_n but_o not_o such_o as_o be_v now_o a_o day_n which_o be_v their_o own_o rule_n and_o law_n who_o monastery_n abound_v in_o all_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n which_o though_o we_o shall_v hold_v our_o peace_n yet_o to_o be_v true_a truth_n itself_o and_o experience_n will_v sufficient_o declare_v and_o those_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v govern_v by_o more_o severe_a discipline_n be_v defile_v with_o hypocrisy_n i_o will_v say_v none_o other_o thing_n touch_v the_o first_o monk_n they_o dwell_v not_o in_o city_n neither_o intermeddle_v themselves_o with_o worldly_a affair_n we_o have_v declare_v in_o another_o place_n how_o that_o a_o writer_n of_o the_o middle_a age_n be_v make_v a_o abbot_n require_v that_o
god_n now_o also_o he_o egg_v false_a prophet_n &_o enchanter_n against_o we_o whereunto_o belong_v deceitful_a ingling_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o sorcery_n &_o witchcraft_n which_o the_o work_n of_o the_o sorcerer_n of_o egypt_n and_o of_o simon_n &_o the_o place_n of_o moses_n in_o deut._n 13._o testify_v to_o be_v most_o effectual_a hereunto_o chief_o belong_v false_a miracle_n &_o corrupt_a answer_n or_o oracle_n by_o these_o true_o in_o time_n past_a he_o do_v very_o much_o hurt_v to_o that_o church_n of_o god_n as_o history_n testify_v nether_a cease_v he_o at_o this_o day_n to_o do_v hurt_v which_o thing_n experience_n itself_o do_v teach_v &_o verify_v for_o though_o it_o be_v certain_a y_fw-mi sathan_n be_v not_o 12_o cast_v out_o by_o that_o power_n of_o sathan_n yet_o one_o give_v place_n to_o another_o for_o a_o time_n to_o this_o end_n that_o they_o may_v that_o more_o dsilie_o deceive_v man_n and_o obtain_v a_o kingdom_n christ_n true_o and_o the_o apostle_n paul_n foretell_v that_o even_o the_o last_o time_n shall_v be_v wonderful_o bewitch_v with_o deceitful_a sign_n and_o power_n most_o evident_a place_n touch_v in_o thing_n be_v extant_a in_o mat._n 24._o 2._o thess._n 2._o i_o more_o may_v be_v speak_v dear_o belove_v &_o that_o at_o large_a concern_v the_o operation_n or_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n but_o i_o trust_v these_o thing_n be_v gather_v together_o in_o brevity_n be_v sufficient_a and_o give_v occasion_n to_o muse_v of_o high_a thing_n but_o let_v no_o man_n so_o understand_v these_o thing_n as_o limit_v if_o the_o devil_n be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o that_o what_o he_o will_v he_o can_v also_o do_v by_o and_o by_o for_o his_o power_n be_v definite_a or_o limit_v &_o restrain_v so_o in_o he_o can_v do_v so_o much_o as_o he_o will_v otherwise_o all_o thing_n have_v be_v over_o throw_v and_o perish_v long_o ago_o therefore_o not_o without_o consideration_n i_o add_v in_o the_o describe_v of_o the_o devil_n y_fw-fr he_o be_v subject_a to_o god_n for_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o with_o out_o god_n permission_n now_o god_n permit_v he_o either_o to_o exercise_v &_o try_v the_o patience_n of_o those_o that_o be_v he_o and_o to_o hasten_v their_o salvation_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_a in_o the_o history_n of_o job_n and_o in_o the_o word_n of_o paul_n to_o the_o corin_n say_v lest_o i_o shall_v be_v exalt_v out_o of_o measure_n through_o the_o abundance_n of_o the_o revelation_n 12._o there_o be_v give_v unto_o i_o a_o prick_n to_o the_o flesh_n the_o messenger_n of_o sathan_n to_o buffet_v i_o neither_o be_v it_o doubful_a that_o in_o most_o grievous_a torment_n of_o persecution_n he_o exalt_v many_o notable_a martyr_n yea_o and_o at_o this_o day_n do_v and_o in_o time_n past_a have_v exalt_v such_o unto_o glory_n and_o everlasting_a rest_n or_o else_o he_o give_v the_o devil_n leave_v to_o execute_v violence_n and_o cruelty_n upon_o man_n by_o that_o mean_n to_o chastise_v their_o wickedness_n or_o to_o punish_v their_o unbelief_n for_o very_o the_o devil_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o god_n wrath_n to_o execute_v his_o vengeance_n for_o paul_n say_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n be_v after_o the_o 2._o work_n of_o sathan_n in_o all_o power_n &_o sign_n and_o wonder_n of_o lie_v and_o in_o all_o deceivableness_n of_o unrighteousness_n in_o they_o that_o perish_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v and_o therefore_o god_o shall_v send_v they_o strong_a delusion_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v lie_n that_o all_o they_o may_v be_v damn_v which_o believe_v not_o the_o truth_n but_o have_v pleasure_n in_o unrighteousness_n and_o this_o in_o a_o manner_n be_v the_o strength_n and_o power_n of_o sorcery_n or_o enchant_a which_o be_v feeble_a in_o the_o faithful_a wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n he_o why_o any_o man_n shall_v miserable_o fear_v the_o devil_n but_o rather_o sanctify_v you_o say_v esaie_n the_o lord_n of_o host_n let_v he_o be_v your_o fear_n &_o your_o reverence_n some_o say_v that_o certain_a nation_n of_o the_o east_n worship_v the_o devil_n for_o this_o cause_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o hurt_v they_o but_o these_o be_v stark_o stare_v mad_a for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o god_n will_v which_o even_o now_o i_o begin_v to_o tell_v you_o or_o if_o he_o give_v no_o leave_n satan_n can_v touch_v so_o much_o as_o a_o hair_n of_o thou_o for_o he_o can_v not_o enter_v into_o the_o hear_v of_o swine_n which_o be_v feed_n nigh_o the_o lake_n genezaret_n at_o gadara_n and_o destroy_v they_o but_o by_o the_o lord_n permission_n saint_n augustine_n also_o expound_v the_o 32._o psalm_n allege_v in_o these_o word_n the_o history_n of_o job_n what_o can_v the_o devil_n himself_o do_v dare_v he_o take_v away_o one_o silly_a sheep_n from_o the_o holy_a man_n job_n before_o he_o say_v lay_v thy_o hand_n on_o he_o that_o be_v to_o say_v give_v i_o power_n he_o be_v willing_a but_o god_o do_v not_o suffer_v he_o when_o god_n give_v he_o leave_v than_o he_o be_v able_a therefore_o the_o devil_n be_v not_o able_a but_o god_o which_o give_v he_o leave_v therefore_o job_n be_v well_o instruct_v do_v not_o say_v as_o we_o now_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v the_o lord_n give_v and_o the_o devil_n have_v take_v away_o but_o the_o lord_n give_v and_o the_o lord_n have_v take_v away_o and_o these_o thing_n do_v exceed_o comfort_v the_o godly_a in_o temptation_n who_o understand_v that_o nothing_o can_v happen_v to_o they_o without_o god_n permission_n &_o that_o he_o permit_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o make_v for_o our_o amendment_n and_o salvation_n and_o therefore_o that_o we_o be_v always_o preserve_v by_o the_o providence_n and_o bountifulness_n of_o god_n for_o whatsoever_o have_v hitherto_o be_v speak_v concern_v the_o power_n and_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n pertain_v not_o hitherto_o to_o dash_n we_o out_o of_o courage_n and_o cast_v we_o down_o but_o to_o make_v we_o more_o vigilant_a or_o watchful_a the_o lord_n that_o overcome_v the_o devil_n 4._o and_o show_v we_o the_o way_n to_o overcome_v he_o command_v we_o to_o watch_v for_o therefore_o he_o encounter_v with_o sathan_n the_o first_o second_o and_o third_o time_n to_o instruct_v we_o how_o we_o shall_v fight_v against_o the_o enemy_n of_o mankind_n he_o overcome_v he_o for_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v not_o despair_v of_o ability_n and_o nower_n easy_o to_o overcome_v he_o since_o he_o be_v already_o weaken_a and_o wound_v by_o faith_n doubtless_o we_o shall_v overcome_v he_o for_o by_o faith_n we_o be_v knit_v 5._o unto_o christ_n and_o by_o faith_n we_o draw_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n by_o the_o force_n and_o virtue_n whereof_o we_o shall_v triumph_n true_o for_o that_o cause_n saint_n peter_n will_v we_o to_o resist_v by_o faith_n saint_n paul_n exbort_v we_o unto_o this_o conflict_n 5._o &_o furnish_v we_o with_o excellent_a complete_a armour_n say_v take_v unto_o 6._o you_o the_o whole_a armour_n of_o god_n that_o you_o may_v be_v able_a to_o resist_v in_o the_o evil_a day_n and_o have_v finish_v all_o thing_n to_o stand_v fast_o stand_v therefore_o have_v your_o loin_n gird_v about_o with_o the_o truth_n and_o have_v on_o the_o breast_n plate_n of_o righteousness_n and_o your_o foot_n shod_a that_o you_o may_v be_v prepare_v to_o the_o gospel_n of_o peace_n above_o all_o thing_n take_v the_o shield_n of_o faith_n wherewith_o you_o may_v quench_v all_o the_o fiery_a dart_n of_o that_o wicked_a and_o take_v the_o helmet_n of_o valuation_n and_o the_o sword_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n pray_v always_o in_o all_o prayer_n and_o supplication_n in_o the_o spirit_n etc_n etc_n whereunto_o that_o also_o belong_v which_o the_o same_o apostle_n witness_v god_n do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v 10._o tempt_v above_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o bear_v but_o shall_v with_o the_o temptation_n make_v away_o to_o escape_v let_v we_o therefore_o reverence_v this_o god_n let_v we_o béeséech_v he_o that_o through_o his_o power_n &_o may_v we_o may_v overcome_v amen_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n and_o of_o his_o most_o certain_a salvation_n after_o the_o death_n of_o his_o body_n the_o ten_o sermon_n all_o man_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n have_v affinity_n or_o likeness_n with_o spirit_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o wiseman_n as_o i_o think_v which_o do_v deny_v that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n whereof_o the_o scripture_n teach_v so_o many_o thing_n and_o that_o too_o so_o diligent_o be_v most_o wholesome_a and_o necessary_a to_o all_o the_o godly_a the_o order_n therefore_o the_o profit_n and_o the_o very_a necessity_n also_o of_o
thing_n do_v require_v that_o i_o speak_v somewhat_o likewise_o of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n wherein_o i_o will_v follow_v the_o plainness_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o interpreter_n thereof_o leave_v physical_a or_o natural_a point_n unto_o they_o to_o be_v expound_v unto_o who_o it_o belong_v by_o duty_n and_o profession_n save_v that_o we_o will_v so_o far_o deal_v in_o they_o as_o we_o can_v want_v they_o in_o this_o discourse_n of_o we_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o interpreter_n thereof_o neither_o move_v curious_a question_n of_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n neither_o do_v they_o satisfy_v curious_a head_n when_o they_o desire_v to_o know_v those_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v declare_v or_o if_o they_o can_v yet_o it_o will_v always_o seem_v unto_o they_o that_o nothing_o be_v unto_o they_o more_o apt_o speak_v for_o they_o always_o stagger_v they_o be_v always_o learning_n and_o yet_o doubt_n they_o nevor_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o truth_n with_o a_o quiet_a mind_n they_o never_o abide_v in_o the_o plain_a truth_n when_o it_o be_v find_v they_o search_v after_o other_o &_o many_o more_o &_o subtle_a matter_n than_o they_o understand_v but_o we_o know_v that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a and_o for_o our_o salvation_n be_v simple_o &_o plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n &_o that_o we_o must_v simple_o godly_o &_o religious_o rest_v in_o they_o therefore_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o deliver_v in_o they_o touch_v that_o matter_n of_o our_o salvation_n we_o know_v that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v after_o of_o we_o &_o that_o they_o hinder_v not_o our_o salvation_n if_o we_o be_v ignorant_a of_o they_o the_o word_n anima_fw-la which_o we_o call_v soul_n be_v diverse_o take_v in_o take_v the_o holy_a scripture_n first_o of_o all_o anima_fw-la that_o soul_n be_v take_v for_o every_o live_a thing_n for_o moses_n bring_v in_o the_o lord_n speak_v let_v the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o live_v creature_n after_o his_o kind_n cattle_n worm_n &_o beast_n of_o the_o earth_n after_o his_o kind_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o there_o be_v reckon_v three_o kind_n or_o part_n give_v i_o leave_v so_o to_o speak_v for_o instruction_n sake_n or_o three_o principal_a power_n of_o the_o soul_n for_o there_o be_v y_fw-fr soul_n vegetative_a which_o work_v in_o plant_n there_o be_v the_o soul_n sensitive_a which_o be_v not_o without_o the_o soul_n vegetative_a &_o it_o give_v life_n to_o brute_n beast_n and_o other_o creature_n endue_v with_o life_n &_o feel_v there_o be_v also_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n wherewith_o man_n be_v endue_v which_o be_v furnish_v with_o many_o power_n or_o ability_n and_o comprehend_v both_o y_fw-es other_o hereof_o life_n anima_fw-la the_o soul_n be_v take_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o breath_n which_o man_n draw_v in_o and_o let_v go_v again_o &_o also_o for_o the_o life_n of_o man_n or_o of_o a_o live_a creature_n thus_o we_o read_v anima_fw-la eius_fw-la etc_n etc_n his_o life_n be_v in_o he_o and_o i_o will_v do_v thou_o no_o more_o harm_n say_v saul_n to_o david_n because_o anima_fw-la mea_fw-la my_o life_n be_v precious_a in_o thine_o eye_n this_o day_n the_o grecian_n call_v 20._o anima_fw-la the_o soul_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o it_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d because_o by_o draw_v breath_n it_o refresh_v the_o hebrician_n call_v it_o naephaeseh_n of_o comfort_v again_o anima_fw-la the_o soul_n be_v take_v in_o the_o scripture_n man._n for_o the_o thing_n itself_o that_o have_v life_n yea_o even_o for_o any_o or_o rather_o for_o the_o whole_a man_n for_o it_o be_v say_v in_o the_o law_n the_o soul_n that_o work_v with_o a_o spirit_n 20._o or_o that_o be_v a_o soothsayer_n shall_v die_v likewise_o in_o paul_n we_o read_v let_v every_o 13._o soul_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o high_a power_n and_o again_o in_o genesis_n the_o king_n of_o sodom_n say_v to_o abraham_n give_v i_o the_o soul_n &_o take_v the_o substance_n or_o good_n 14._o to_o thyself_o for_o the_o scripture_n be_v wont_a to_o name_v the_o whole_a by_o a_o part_n for_o as_o by_o the_o soul_n he_o mean_v that_o whole_a man_n rehearse_v the_o noble_a part_n so_o by_o flesh_n also_o he_o signify_v the_o whole_a base_a part_n moreover_o since_o man_n &_o also_o other_o live_a creature_n have_v a_o appetitive_a or_o desire_a soul_n be_v use_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o affection_n will_v desire_v or_o lust_n for_o ●esire_n ezechiel_n say_v they_o shall_v not_o satisfy_v their_o soul_n in_o dutch_a sy_n werdend_v iron_n 7._o glu_v n●t_a buffen_n noither_o shall_v their_o belly_n be_v fill_v last_o anima_fw-la y_fw-mi soul_n signify_v y_fw-fr reasonable_a soul_n of_o man._n man._n whereof_o we_o will_v entreat_v god_n assist_v at_o this_o present_a yet_o here_o i_o can_v dissemble_v that_o among_o very_o famous_a writer_n there_o be_v controversy_n de_n anima_fw-la &_o animo_fw-la about_o the_o soul_n and_o the_o mind_n whether_o they_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o or_o diverse_a and_o that_o there_o be_v reason_n on_o both_o side_n they_o that_o make_v a_o difference_n mind_n between_o they_o say_v that_o by_o the_o soul_n we_o live_v and_o that_o with_o the_o mind_n we_o understand_v which_o thing_n lactantius_n say_v in_o his_o eighteen_o i_o de_fw-fr opisi●●o_fw-la dei._n i_o know_v that_o all_o the_o best_a &_o most_o approve_a writer_n use_v they_o both_o indifferent_o and_o take_v the_o one_o for_o the_o other_o for_o we_o must_v not_o think_v that_o there_o be_v two_o soul_n in_o man_n for_o very_o soul_n well_o have_v the_o schoose_v definition_n define_v utter_v these_o word_n in_o y●_n 15._o cha_z we_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o be_v two_o soul_n in_o one_o ma_fw-fr as_o jacobus_n &_o certain_a of_o the_o syrian_n write_v one_o natural_a whereby_o the_o body_n have_v life_n and_o be_v mingle_v with_o blood_n the_o other_o spiritual_a which_o minister_v reason_n but_o we_o say_v there_o be_v one_o &_o the_o self_n same_o soul_n in_o man_n which_o both_o quicken_v the_o body_n with_o his_o fellowship_n &_o order_v himself_o by_o his_o own_o reason_n therefore_o we_o do_v not_o think_v that_o there_o be_v any_o consideration_n to_o be_v have_v of_o they_o which_o altogether_o soul_n deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o soul_n for_o these_o be_v as_o mad_a as_o they_o which_o deny_v that_o the_o sun_n shine_v for_o all_o of_o we_o do_v see_v &_o feel_v the_o sun_n as_o also_o we_o live_v by_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o soul_n furthermore_o what_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n of_o man_n be_v be_v the_o wise_a head_n of_o this_o world_n can_v not_o as_o yet_o with_o one_o agreement_n define_v for_o they_o so_o differ_v y_fw-es a_o man_n shall_v hardly_o find_v two_o which_o say_v one_o thing_n and_o there_o be_v opinion_n not_o a_o few_o contrary_n between_o themselves_o what_o do_v not_o the_o old_a interpreter_n ●f_o the_o scripture_n doubt_o proceed_v in_o define_v the_o soul_n lactantius_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr opificio_fw-la dei_fw-la deny_v that_o man_n can_v attain_v to_o the_o reason_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o soul_n therefore_o nothing_o at_o all_o do_v they_o err_v from_o the_o truth_n which_o think_v the_o soul_n can_v be_v comprehend_v in_o no_o absolute_a definition_n wherein_o his_o nature_n may_v be_v express_v thorough_o &_o at_o the_o full_a yet_o that_o the_o nature_n or_o disposition_n of_o the_o same_o might_n after_o a_o sort_n b●_z shadow_v out_o and_o that_o by_o the_o work_n or_o action_n thereof_o &_o by_o such_o quality_n as_o the_o scripture_n do_v attribute_v there_o be_v some_o therefore_o which_o have_v say_v that_o the_o soul_n be_v the_o spirit_n of_o life_n create_v after_o the_o image_n of_o god_n &_o breathe_v into_o the_o body_n of_o man_n one_o there_o be_v which_o describe_v it_o thus_o the_o soul_n be_v a_o spirit_n whereby_o the_o body_n to_o which_o it_o be_v couple_v do_v live_v make_v apt_a to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n through_o love_n and_o hereby_o meet_a to_o be_v join_v within_o unto_o everlasting_a blessedness_n another_o define_v it_o after_o this_o sort_n a_o reasonable_a soul_n be_v a_o understanding_n spirit_n one_o part_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o man_n neither_o die_v it_o when_o it_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o body_n but_o be_v immortal_a cassiodore_n define_v it_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n be_v create_v of_o god_n a_o spiritual_a and_o peculiar_a substance_n which_o quicken_v the_o body_n who_o own_o it_o be_v reasonable_a in_o deed_n and_o immortal_a we_o will_v setdown_o a_o description_n fetch_v from_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v weigh_v &_o consider_v upon_o of_o the_o godly_a &_o to_o direct_v &_o rule_v this_o our_o whole_a discourse_n the_o soul_n